Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n daughter_n king_n son_n 18,071 5 5.0209 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A50840 Mysteries in religion vindicated, or, The filiation, deity and satisfaction of our Saviour asserted against Socinians and others with occasional reflections on several late pamphlets / by Luke Milbourne ... Milbourne, Luke, 1649-1720. 1692 (1692) Wing M2034; ESTC R34533 413,573 836

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o chief_a family_n of_o which_o the_o priesthood_n belong_v come_v to_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n incorporate_v into_o the_o great_a tribe_n of_o judah_n if_o withal_o he_o take_v notice_n that_o though_o the_o regal_a power_n in_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n end_v with_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n yet_o the_o priesthood_n continue_v in_o the_o family_n of_o aaron_n he_o may_v easy_o see_v the_o fulfil_n of_o jacob_n word_n for_o we_o may_v see_v aaron_z the_o first_o patriarch_n of_o the_o priestly_a family_n break_v out_o of_o his_o own_o into_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n and_o marry_v elisheba_n the_o daughter_n of_o aminadab_n and_o sister_n of_o naashon_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n 6.23_o exod._n 6.23_o which_o aminadab_n and_o naashon_n be_v particular_o reckon_v among_o david_n predecessor_n by_o s._n matthew_n 1.4_o matth._n 1.4_o by_o which_o mean_v the_o regal_a and_o sacerdotal_a line_n be_v intermingle_v as_o well_o as_o the_o tribe_n be_v afterward_o nor_o be_v such_o alliance_n altogether_o extraordinary_a for_o we_o find_v afterward_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n marry_v jehoshabeath_n the_o sister_n of_o ahaziah_n king_n of_o judah_n 22.11_o 2_o chron._n 22.11_o of_o the_o house_n and_o lineage_n of_o david_n now_o the_o sceptre_n be_v assign_v immediate_o to_o the_o hand_n of_o judah_n the_o royalty_n be_v full_o and_o entire_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o that_o tribe_n without_o any_o competition_n either_o with_o the_o benjamite_n or_o simeonites_n part_n of_o which_o tribe_n stick_v fast_o to_o judah_n interest_n after_o the_o revolt_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n but_o the_o lawgiver_n be_v place_v between_o his_o foot_n not_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n some_o affix_v to_o that_o phrase_n as_o if_o jacob_n speak_v modest_o of_o the_o original_a birth_n of_o such_o lawgiver_n as_o if_o be_v between_o the_o knee_n be_v a_o equivalent_a to_o be_v bear_v from_o the_o womb_n of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o it_o be_v true_a it_o sometime_o mean_n but_o it_o signify_v the_o lawgiver_n shall_v be_v in_o his_o protection_n or_o within_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o limit_n as_o a_o great_a officer_n between_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o sovereign_n on_o some_o solemn_a occasion_n or_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v say_v to_o have_v set_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n between_o his_o foot_n at_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n with_o that_o expression_n includimus_fw-la hunc_fw-la in_o orbe_fw-la nostro_fw-la tanquam_fw-la alterius_fw-la orbis_fw-la papam_fw-la and_o so_o the_o lawgiver_n be_v continual_o within_o the_o proper_a bound_n and_o limit_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n but_o as_o the_o sceptre_n depart_v from_o judah_n at_o that_o captivity_n so_o the_o legal_a expounder_n of_o sacred_a writing_n to_o the_o jewish_a nation_n be_v take_v away_o about_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n incarnation_n the_o family_n of_o aaron_n be_v then_o light_v and_o every_o one_o admit_v to_o the_o high-priesthood_n who_o can_v give_v most_o money_n for_o that_o office_n and_o the_o civil_a government_n though_o under_o the_o title_n of_o herod_n be_v a_o mere_a vassal_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n when_o these_o thing_n be_v both_o come_v to_o pass_v than_o shilo_n the_o promise_a messiah_n come_v in_o who_o those_o particular_a assurance_n to_o david_n be_v make_v good_a that_o out_o of_o his_o loin_n the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v in_o he_o the_o royal_a and_o priestly_a line_n be_v unite_v he_o be_v legal_a heir_n to_o both_o house_n he_o be_v a_o king_n and_o priest_n for_o ever_o to_o who_o the_o gather_n of_o all_o nation_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v 32.35_o luke_n 1.27_o 32.35_o now_o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v of_o the_o house_n and_o lineage_n of_o david_n as_o well_o as_o joseph_n we_o learn_v from_o scripture_n and_o if_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n be_v exalt_v by_o the_o advancement_n of_o david_n to_o the_o imperial_a throne_n it_o be_v much_o more_o exalt_v and_o more_o adorable_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n by_o the_o birth_n of_o jesus_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o king_n of_o all_o thing_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n how_o moses_n his_o word_n be_v make_v good_a of_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v raise_v up_o like_a to_o himself_o i_o show_v before_o that_o be_v make_v truth_n in_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v more_o complete_a application_n belong_v to_o our_o saviour_n manly_a age_n when_o he_o make_v himself_o public_a and_o undertake_v to_o preach_v repentance_n to_o his_o obstinate_a countryman_n but_o that_o of_o a_o body_n have_v thou_o prepare_v for_o i_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o the_o angel_n word_n be_v effect_v the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v overshadow_v thou_o therefore_o also_o that_o holy_a thing_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1.25_o luke_n 1.25_o it_o be_v a_o immediate_a divine_a power_n that_o give_v a_o beginning_n and_o increase_n to_o that_o sacred_a body_n in_o the_o virgin_n be_v womb_n nothing_o can_v be_v produce_v between_o man_n and_o woman_n as_o under_o the_o ancient_a curse_n and_o miserable_o corrupt_v and_o pollute_v in_o their_o nature_n that_o be_v fit_a for_o those_o great_a thing_n at_o that_o time_n design_v for_o we_o for_o who_o can_v bring_v a_o clean_a thing_n out_o of_o a_o unclean_a therefore_o a_o virgin_n untouched_a by_o man_n be_v choose_v for_o his_o habitation_n who_o be_v to_o redeem_v lose_v mankind_n and_o be_v overshadow_a by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o almighty_a 1.2_o gen._n 1.2_o which_o do_v incubare_fw-la in_o virginem_fw-la as_o the_o same_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o move_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o water_n to_o cover_v it_o as_o the_o bird_n cover_v her_o egg_n to_o make_v they_o prolific_a as_o the_o word_n import_v now_o a_o body_n so_o prepare_v and_o so_o inhabit_v as_o our_o saviour_n humanity_n be_v can_v not_o be_v but_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a since_o if_o a_o corrupt_a tree_n can_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n neither_o can_v a_o good_a tree_n bring_v forth_o evil_a fruit_n the_o reason_n of_o both_o their_o production_n be_v the_o same_o nor_o be_v it_o unreasonable_a he_o shall_v be_v david_n lord_n though_o his_o son_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n who_o birth_n be_v intimate_v by_o holy_a angel_n who_o father_n be_v almighty_a god_n himself_o and_o who_o kingdom_n be_v to_o endure_v from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a all_o which_o circumstance_n render_v he_o infinite_o more_o considerable_a to_o pure_a reason_n than_o ever_o david_n be_v nor_o can_v the_o humble_a manner_n of_o his_o entrance_n into_o the_o world_n be_v any_o just_a prejudice_n to_o his_o mighty_a title_n david_n be_v mean_a and_o inconsiderable_a too_o when_o god_n take_v he_o from_o attend_v on_o the_o sheep-fold_n to_o feed_v his_o people_n israel_n and_o the_o prophet_n zachary_n give_v he_o notwithstanding_o his_o apparent_a meanness_n his_o due_a honour_n rejoice_v great_o o_o daughter_n of_o zion_n shout_n o_o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n 9.9_o zach._n 9.9_o behold_v thy_o king_n come_v unto_o thou_o he_o be_v just_a and_o have_a salvation_n lowly_a and_o ride_v upon_o a_o ass_n and_o upon_o a_o colt_n the_o foal_n of_o a_o ass_n he_o may_v then_o be_v a_o king_n still_o how_o despicable_a soever_o he_o appear_v to_o humane_a eye_n and_o as_o a_o king_n according_a to_o the_o extent_n and_o proportion_n of_o his_o empire_n may_v be_v lord_n of_o david_n and_o of_o all_o the_o king_n upon_o earth_n isaiah_n have_v long_o since_o foretell_v he_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n and_o so_o in_o the_o event_n he_o be_v marry_o his_o mother_n be_v a_o virgin_n even_o beyond_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o malicious_a jew_n it_o be_v to_o such_o a_o one_o the_o angel_n be_v send_v it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o who_o be_v according_a to_o his_o assurance_n to_o be_v overshadowed_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o who_o be_v to_o conceive_v and_o bring_v forth_o and_o the_o evangelist_n open_o declare_v of_o jesus_n that_o when_o as_o his_o mother_n mary_n be_v espouse_v to_o joseph_n 1.18_o matt._n 1.18_o before_o they_o come_v together_o she_o be_v find_v with_o child_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o joseph_n he_o assert_n that_o he_o know_v she_o not_o until_o she_o have_v bring_v forth_o her_o first_o bear_v son_n 25._o v._o 25._o and_o he_o call_v his_o name_n jesus_n and_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n have_v be_v ecstasy_v with_o joy_n at_o the_o knowledge_n of_o a_o child_n a_o son_n of_o so_o divine_a a_o nature_n be_v give_v to_o his_o people_n when_o that_o child_n be_v bear_v indeed_o the_o sacred_a
fellow_n servant_n a_o creature_n and_o order_v he_o to_o worship_n god_n i._n e._n the_o supreme_a be_v then_o that_o must_v be_v a_o rule_n to_o angel_n too_o and_o they_o may_v not_o adore_v or_o worship_v a_o creature_n no_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n may_v therefore_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v no_o creature_n since_o they_o be_v command_v to_o worship_v he_o therefore_o he_o must_v be_v god_n for_o we_o know_v of_o no_o intermedial_a power_n between_o a_o creator_n and_o a_o creature_n we_o be_v to_o worship_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n 4.10_o mat._n 4.10_o and_o he_o only_o be_v we_o to_o serve_v as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o allege_v but_o we_o be_v to_o worship_v the_o son_n of_o god_n angel_n be_v to_o do_v so_o too_o therefore_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n and_o since_o we_o be_v get_v into_o this_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n we_o may_v add_v in_o evidence_n of_o our_o assertion_n that_o other_o quotation_n thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n 102.25_o ps_n 102.25_o and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n etc._n heb._n 1.10_o etc._n etc._n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o remain_v and_o they_o all_o shall_v wax_v old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n and_o as_o a_o vesture_n shall_v thou_o change_v they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v but_o thou_o be_v the_o same_o and_o thy_o year_n shall_v not_o fail_v which_o text_n be_v so_o home_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o schlicktingius_n twist_v and_o wind_n himself_o every_o way_n to_o evade_v its_o force_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o place_n and_o after_o all_o do_v but_o magno_fw-la conatu_fw-la magnas_fw-la nugas_fw-la agere_fw-la as_o the_o comedian_n he_o make_v a_o great_a stir_n to_o no_o purpose_n he_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n if_o he_o say_v he_o design_v to_o persuade_v we_o christ_n be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n why_o do_v he_o not_o say_v so_o without_o any_o far_a circumstance_n the_o matter_n have_v be_v then_o past_a dispute_n but_o we_o suppose_v it_o be_v so_o plain_a as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o already_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a as_o those_o word_n he_o will_v prescribe_v can_v have_v make_v it_o to_z all_z but_o man_n of_o perverse_a wit_n who_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n for_o if_o as_o he_o own_v none_o but_o the_o supreme_a god_n can_v be_v the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v here_o by_o the_o apostle_n ascribe_v to_o the_o son_n than_o the_o inevitable_a consequence_n which_o the_o heretic_n will_v have_v have_v lay_v down_o at_o first_o be_v that_o the_o son_n be_v the_o supreme_a god_n or_o god_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n and_o whereas_o the_o main_a foundation_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o socinian_n heresy_n be_v as_o sandius_n another_o of_o that_o tribe_n own_v that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o son_n be_v not_o if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v indeed_o the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n than_o he_o be_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o consequent_o before_o time_n itself_o and_o so_o their_o foundation_n be_v apparent_o false_a for_o he_o that_o have_v a_o be_v before_o time_n be_v must_v of_o necessity_n be_v eternal_a but_o schlicktingius_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a text_n produce_v by_o the_o apostle_n only_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o last_o word_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o christ_n and_o that_o it_o be_v quote_v only_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o dominion_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o expire_v but_o with_o the_o abolition_n of_o all_o thing_n locum_fw-la schlicktingius_n in_o locum_fw-la quod_fw-la regni_fw-la christi_fw-la quod_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la administrat_fw-la terminus_fw-la cum_fw-la inimicorum_fw-la ejus_fw-la omnium_fw-la abolitione_n quos_fw-la coeli_fw-la &_o terrae_fw-la ruina_fw-la involvet_fw-la sit_fw-la conjunctus_fw-la be_v his_o word_n that_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n which_o he_o administer_v in_o this_o world_n be_v join_v with_o the_o utter_a abolition_n of_o all_o his_o enemy_n who_o shall_v be_v at_o once_o involve_v in_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o universe_n as_o for_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o quotation_n he_o make_v it_o altogether_o impertinent_a but_o that_o the_o apostle_n take_v the_o text_n whole_a as_o it_o lay_v because_o he_o know_v the_o hebrew_n to_o who_o he_o write_v be_v in_o no_o danger_n of_o interpret_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o refer_v to_o christ_n who_o they_o know_v well_o enough_o to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o mere_a man_n and_o no_o more_o and_o add_v that_o have_v the_o apostle_n design_v any_o more_o by_o that_o text_n it_o have_v be_v altogether_o beside_o his_o purpose_n but_o here_o i_o conclude_v our_o adversary_n mistake_v the_o apostle_n meaning_n wilful_o which_o be_v this_o write_v to_o the_o jew_n his_o first_o design_n be_v to_o convince_v they_o of_o the_o messiahship_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v a_o man_n they_o have_v see_v evidence_n enough_o of_o that_o in_o what_o he_o do_v and_o suffer_v among_o they_o they_o have_v see_v he_o crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o dream_v of_o his_o have_v only_o a_o fantastic_a body_n be_v only_o a_o apparition_n as_o some_o heretic_n afterward_o assert_v a_o phantasm_n or_o a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o they_o see_v he_o have_v the_o hebrew_n be_v so_o certain_a of_o this_o that_o they_o will_v believe_v he_o to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o man_n a_o man_n weak_a and_o inconsiderable_a a_o perfect_a cheat_n pretend_v to_o the_o noble_a character_n of_o be_v their_o long_a expect_a messiah_n but_o no_o way_n answer_v that_o character_n have_v appear_v in_o no_o such_o glory_n as_o the_o prophet_n have_v foretell_v and_o have_v wrought_v no_o deliverance_n for_o israel_n according_a to_o their_o reasonable_a expectation_n now_o to_o convince_v they_o of_o their_o error_n he_o assert_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n v._o 2._o he_o prove_v the_o messiah_n be_v to_o be_v so_o from_o their_o own_o book_n v._o 5._o he_o assert_v he_o to_o have_v be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o god_n person_n the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n the_o upholder_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o power_n v._o 3._o that_o the_o messiah_n be_v to_o be_v so_o he_o prove_v from_o his_o superiority_n to_o angel_n v._o 6_o 7._o nay_o he_o assert_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o prove_v the_o messiah_n be_v to_o be_v so_o v._o 8_o 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o epistle_n afterward_o he_o show_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o legal_a type_n in_o he_o with_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o office_n in_o every_o respect_n particular_o of_o his_o priesthood_n the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o which_o to_o they_o be_v this_o that_o if_o the_o type_n of_o the_o law_n be_v accomplish_v in_o he_o which_o they_o can_v judge_v of_o by_o compare_v the_o law_n with_o his_o action_n if_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o himself_o assert_v and_o prove_v he_o then_o can_v be_v no_o cheat_n how_o mean_o soever_o he_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n but_o be_v capable_a of_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o have_v own_a himself_n to_o be_v so_o since_o he_o be_v incapable_a of_o deceit_n he_o real_o be_v that_o messiah_n they_o expect_v and_o have_v wrought_v a_o deliverance_n great_a and_o more_o valuable_a than_o they_o dream_v of_o not_o only_o for_o they_o but_o for_o all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o make_v good_a this_o truth_n the_o apply_v the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o he_o be_v not_o impertinent_a god_n make_v the_o world_n by_o his_o son_n v._o 2._o of_o this_o chapter_n therefore_o he_o by_o who_o the_o world_n be_v make_v have_v a_o be_v himself_o before_o they_o be_v make_v which_o be_v what_o st._n john_n assert_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v god_n 3._o john_n 1.1_o 3._o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v nothing_o make_v that_o be_v make_v all_o which_o consider_v it_o be_v no_o wonder_n the_o psalmist_n prescribe_v so_o to_o the_o church_n harken_v o_o daughter_n and_o consider_v and_o incline_v thy_o ear_n forget_v also_o thy_o own_o people_n and_o thy_o father_n house_n so_o shall_v the_o king_n great_o desire_v thy_o beauty_n 11._o psal_n 45.10_o 11._o for_o he_o be_v thy_o lord_n god_n and_o worship_n thou_o he_o he_o that_o be_v god_n be_v real_o and_o lawful_o to_o be_v worship_v the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v urge_v be_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n 9.6_o isai_n 9.6_o unto_o we_o a_o
among_o other_o thing_n tell_v we_o 44.17_o isa_n 44.17_o he_o that_o have_v just_o make_v the_o golden_a image_n fall_v down_o and_o worship_v it_o and_o pray_v unto_o it_o and_o say_v deliver_v i_o for_o thou_o be_v my_o god_n doubtless_o the_o engraver_n and_o carver_n etc._n etc._n will_v ready_o plead_v for_o themselves_o they_o look_v upon_o their_o image_n but_o as_o symbol_n of_o a_o real_a deity_n or_o place_n of_o residence_n for_o more_o spiritual_a being_n or_o at_o most_o but_o as_o subordinate_a god_n yet_o all_o this_o will_v not_o excuse_v they_o from_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n for_o god_n first_o declare_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n that_o he_o be_v the_o live_a god_n and_o a_o everlasting_a king_n 11._o jer._n 10.10_o 11._o at_o who_o wrath_n the_o earth_n shall_v tremble_v and_o the_o nation_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o abide_v his_o indignation_n add_v far_a the_o god_n that_o have_v not_o make_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n even_o they_o shall_v perish_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o from_o under_o these_o heaven_n that_o be_v then_o the_o characteristic_a or_o the_o test_n of_o a_o true_a god_n the_o make_n of_o the_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o earth_n on_o which_o reason_n begin_v we_o our_o creed_n with_o that_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o whosoever_o it_o be_v who_o have_v not_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n in_o that_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o prophet_n here_o speak_v he_o be_v a_o idol_n and_o all_o those_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n who_o put_v any_o confidence_n in_o he_o 13._o with_fw-mi marshal_n l._n 5._o epig._n 8._o suet._n in_o domit._n c._n 13._o and_o such_o be_v caligula_n and_o domitian_n those_o proud_a emperor_n who_o know_v not_o how_o to_o sit_v down_o with_o a_o inferior_a title_n to_o that_o domini_fw-la deique_fw-la nostri_fw-la of_o our_o lord_n and_o our_o god_n and_o very_a heathen_n themselves_o think_v this_o be_v assume_v divine_a honour_n to_o themselves_o and_o such_o as_o be_v no_o way_n become_v mortal_a man_n but_o i_o know_v the_o socinian_o allow_v those_o who_o be_v make_v god_n by_o man_n to_o be_v idol_n but_o those_o who_o be_v make_v by_o almighty_a god_n himself_o be_v not_o so_o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la unus_fw-la ille_fw-la deus_fw-la falsos_fw-la deos_fw-la facit_fw-la homines_fw-la hoc_fw-la faciunt_fw-la say_v schlicktingius_n for_o he_o who_o be_v the_o one_o supreme_a god_n do_v not_o make_v false_a god_n they_o be_v only_a man_n who_o do_v so_o hence_o according_a to_o they_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v true_a god_n because_o they_o be_v constitute_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o represent_v his_o own_o person_n to_o the_o world_n but_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v never_o king_n upon_o earth_n but_o only_o such_o as_o those_o beforenamed_n caligula_n or_o domitian_n pretend_v to_o such_o a_o name_n nor_o be_v there_o ever_o any_o but_o sordid_a parasite_n and_o flatterer_n who_o offer_v to_o call_v they_o their_o lord_n and_o their_o god_n alexander_n the_o great_a himself_o though_o foolish_a and_o ambitious_a to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o jupiter_n yet_o can_v not_o but_o expose_v their_o baseness_n who_o comply_v with_o his_o mad_a fancy_n when_o he_o see_v the_o blood_n trickle_v from_o a_o wound_n he_o have_v receive_v and_o ask_v they_o whether_o that_o be_v like_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o homer_n make_v to_o fall_v from_o his_o god_n they_o allege_v on_o their_o own_o behalf_n that_o passage_n in_o the_o psalmist_n thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o 45.6_o psal_n 45.6_o which_o say_v they_o be_v there_o speak_v of_o solomon_n which_o we_o as_o positive_o deny_v and_o be_v assure_v they_o can_v never_o prove_v god_n by_o his_o prophet_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o tell_v downright_a falsehood_n as_o he_o must_v do_v if_o this_o be_v to_o be_v so_o apply_v for_o which_o way_n shall_v we_o make_v it_o out_o that_o solomon_n throne_n be_v everlasting_a when_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o sink_v in_o his_o immediate_a successor_n which_o way_n shall_v the_o sceptre_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v make_v a_o right_a sceptre_n who_o immediate_a successor_n and_o several_a after_o he_o have_v that_o character_n in_o scripture_n that_o they_o do_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n what_o great_a and_o terrible_a thing_n be_v those_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o sword_n of_o peaceable_a solomon_n who_o be_v to_o be_v no_o man_n of_o blood_n no_o conqueror_n o●_n what_o worship_n do_v we_o ever_o read_v be_v pay_v by_o pharaoh_n daughter_n or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o numerous_a wife_n and_o concubine_n to_o solomon_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_o apply_v these_o word_n to_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n 45.6_o without_o the_o least_o mention_n of_o solomon_n beside_o this_o then_o they_o have_v no_o text_n which_o look_v like_o any_o thing_n of_o ascribe_v those_o name_n my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n to_o any_o create_v be_v whatsoever_o and_o when_o they_o have_v say_v all_o they_o can_v christ_n himself_o must_v be_v a_o idol_n to_o thomas_n and_o to_o all_o those_o who_o own_v he_o at_o any_o time_n to_o be_v their_o lord_n and_o their_o god_n if_o it_o be_v not_o he_o who_o have_v make_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n prince_n may_v be_v metaphorical_a god_n but_o they_o be_v not_o set_v up_o for_o humane_a adoration_n man_n and_o angel_n be_v to_o adore_v the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o metaphorical_a god_n and_o we_o need_v beg_v no_o pardon_n for_o say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o almighty_a god_n to_o create_v or_o make_v a_o true_a or_o a_o eternal_a god_n or_o another_o be_v almighty_a as_o himself_o it_o be_v nonsense_n to_o talk_v of_o monarch_n subordinate_a one_o to_o another_o or_o of_o monarch_n coordinate_a with_o one_o another_o in_o the_o same_o territory_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a nonsense_n to_o tell_v we_o christ_n be_v a_o subordinate_a god_n to_o his_o father_n or_o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o supreme_a god_n over_o all_o bless_a for_o ever_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n call_v his_o master_n my_o god_n and_o my_o lord_n his_o meaning_n must_v be_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o true_a god_n one_o god_n coessential_a coeternal_a with_o his_o father_n from_o hence_o then_o we_o proceed_v to_o 9.5_o rom_n 9.5_o of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n the_o character_n here_o be_v very_o high_a the_o text_n plain_a and_o it_o may_v just_o be_v conclude_v those_o must_v adventure_v very_o bold_o who_o can_v elude_v its_o force_n if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o word_n we_o there_o find_v the_o apostle_n express_v a_o extraordinary_a affection_n to_o his_o countryman_n be_v willing_a to_o become_v a_o curse_n for_o his_o brethren_n his_o kinsman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n who_o condition_n he_o commiserate_v the_o more_o because_o of_o those_o extraordinary_a privilege_n they_o have_v before_o enjoy_v for_o there_o be_v no_o great_a aggravation_n of_o misery_n than_o to_o have_v make_v a_o great_a many_o fair_a step_n towards_o happiness_n and_o to_o have_v fall_v short_a of_o it_o at_o last_o these_o privilege_n they_o have_v enjoy_v be_v extraordinary_a they_o be_v israelites_n so_o god_n proper_a or_o peculiar_a inheritance_n beyond_o all_o other_o nation_n whatsoever_o to_o they_o pertain_v the_o adoption_n or_o they_o be_v adopt_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o be_v call_v so_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o they_o appertain_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n peculiar_a presence_n among_o they_o own_v they_o for_o his_o people_n and_o deliver_v they_o glorious_o with_o a_o mighty_a hand_n and_o stretch_v out_o arm_n from_o their_o cruel_a enemy_n to_o they_o belong_v the_o covenant_n the_o two_o table_n write_v with_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n himself_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n that_o law_n moral_a political_n and_o ceremonial_a which_o make_v their_o religious_a ordinance_n their_o civil_a government_n and_o their_o manner_n far_o superior_a to_o those_o of_o all_o other_o nation_n to_o they_o belong_v the_o service_n of_o god_n the_o only_a true_a external_a form_n or_o method_n of_o worship_n and_o the_o promise_n for_o all_o the_o prophet_n among_o those_o severe_a menace_n they_o denounce_v against_o israel_n for_o their_o sin_n yet_o always_o bring_v the_o promise_n of_o a_o messiah_n a_o redeemer_n to_o come_v to_o comfort_v they_o there_o be_v be_v the_o father_n all_o those_o man_n so_o eminent_a for_o their_o favour_n with_o god_n such_o as_o abraham_n isaac_n
action_n prove_v to_o the_o world_n they_o be_v in_o quest_n of_o a_o better_a country_n and_o yet_o we_o who_o have_v see_v the_o performance_n of_o those_o promise_v they_o depend_v on_o their_o obscurity_n all_o clear_v their_o certainty_n vindicate_v we_o who_o be_v beset_v with_o such_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n can_v cast_v aside_o every_o sin_n and_o the_o weight_n that_o do_v so_o easy_o oppress_v we_o and_o run_v with_o joy_n the_o race_n that_o be_v set_v before_o we_o be_v we_o bondslave_n to_o hell_n and_o have_v the_o son_n of_o god_n strike_v off_o our_o chain_n and_o fetter_n and_o do_v we_o love_v they_o still_o be_v light_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o can_v we_o love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_v be_v we_o all_o liable_a to_o eternal_a vengeance_n and_o have_v our_o lord_n redeem_v we_o with_o his_o own_o most_o precious_a blood_n from_o the_o dismal_a stroke_n of_o that_o vengeance_n and_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o have_v alone_o tread_v the_o wine-press_n of_o his_o father_n wrath_n for_o we_o we_o be_v sinner_n we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v foolish_a and_o obstinate_a enemy_n yet_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v and_o can_v we_o be_v his_o enemy_n still_o who_o be_v so_o much_o our_o friend_n i_o be_o sure_a whatever_o corrupt_a nature_n may_v tempt_v we_o to_o it_o will_v be_v wretched_a policy_n in_o we_o to_o reject_v what_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o the_o wicked_a husbandman_n kill_v their_o lord_n son_n indeed_o but_o it_o be_v to_o their_o own_o confusion_n the_o rebellious_a citizen_n refuse_v to_o have_v their_o rightful_a king_n reign_v over_o they_o but_o it_o be_v to_o their_o destruction_n the_o first_o or_o primary_n end_v of_o our_o saviour_n come_v be_v that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v but_o if_o man_n foolish_o neglect_v that_o end_n there_o be_v a_o secondary_a design_n in_o it_o that_o those_o who_o still_o continue_v in_o sin_n may_v be_v without_o excuse_n that_o they_o may_v have_v nothing_o to_o plead_v for_o themselves_o at_o the_o great_a day_n but_o that_o the_o justice_n of_o his_o wrath_n against_o sin_n and_o sinner_n may_v appear_v to_o man_n and_o angel_n where_o a_o ambassador_n of_o peace_n be_v send_v and_o slight_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o ambassador_n aggravate_v the_o contempt_n the_o apostle_n therefore_o have_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n demonstrate_v the_o dignity_n of_o christ_n and_o prove_v his_o pre-eminence_n to_o man_n and_o angel_n who_o yet_o after_o the_o several_a method_n god_n have_v former_o take_v to_o reveal_v himself_o have_v in_o those_o latter_a day_n speak_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n make_v this_o rational_a deduction_n from_o all_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v the_o more_o earnest_a heed_n to_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o hear_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n 3._o heb._n 2.1_o 2_o 3._o for_o if_o the_o word_n speak_v by_o angel_n be_v steadfast_a and_o every_o transgression_n and_o disobedience_n receive_v a_o just_a recompense_n of_o reward_n how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o we_o neglect_v so_o great_a salvation_n which_o at_o the_o first_o begin_v to_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v confirm_v to_o we_o by_o they_o that_o hear_v he_o if_o we_o repent_v not_o at_o his_o call_n if_o we_o submit_v not_o to_o his_o admonition_n nor_o lie_v hold_v on_o his_o grace_n we_o must_v not_o please_v ourselves_o with_o empty_a dream_n of_o enter_v into_o his_o rest_n there_o remain_v now_o no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n his_o indeed_o be_v sufficient_a to_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o and_o obey_v he_o but_o for_o those_o who_o obey_v not_o the_o truth_n there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o indignation_n and_o wrath_n tribulation_n and_o anguish_n to_o every_o soul_n that_o do_v evil_a let_v his_o state_n and_o condition_n be_v what_o it_o will_v this_o woe_n i_o hope_v all_o those_o who_o profess_v christianity_n will_v endeavour_v to_o avoid_v and_o that_o all_o those_o who_o name_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o glorious_a save_a name_n will_v depart_v from_o iniquity_n if_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o he_o be_v god_n himself_o infinite_a and_o eternal_a and_o yet_o humble_v himself_o and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o our_o redemption_n if_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o he_o who_o undertake_v so_o great_a a_o work_n shall_v be_v real_a god_n as_o well_o as_o real_a man_n or_o else_o must_v have_v sink_v in_o that_o prodigious_a attempt_n it_o behoove_v all_o those_o who_o expect_v salvation_n by_o his_o name_n to_o adhere_v to_o this_o doctrine_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o sacred_a writ_n that_o be_v as_o god_n coequal_a and_o coessential_a with_o his_o father_n i_o will_v to_o god_n the_o caution_n be_v needless_a there_o be_v some_o heretic_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n who_o will_v needs_o maintain_v our_o lord_n be_v not_o true_a man_n have_v only_o a_o fantastical_a body_n but_o not_o real_a flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o we_o have_v other_o as_o it_o be_v to_o balance_v they_o will_v assert_v our_o saviour_n be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o no_o more_o that_o he_o be_v not_o real_a god_n nor_o his_o love_n to_o we_o nor_o his_o undertake_n for_o we_o so_o great_a as_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o conclude_v god_n blessing_n upon_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n crush_v the_o grow_a heresy_n and_o they_o bequeath_v to_o we_o a_o faith_n undeprave_v unchanged_a nor_o have_v the_o trent-conventicle_n a_o opportunity_n to_o propound_v their_o additional_a article_n of_o faith_n till_o beside_o the_o eastern_a church_n god_n be_v please_v to_o raise_v up_o man_n in_o these_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n of_o extraordinary_a piety_n and_o learning_n and_o industry_n who_o have_v rescue_v the_o genuine_a christian_a faith_n from_o fraud_n and_o obscurity_n to_o give_v it_o we_o so_o as_o the_o ancient_a christian_n have_v leave_v it_o without_o addition_n or_o alteration_n by_o which_o care_n they_o prevent_v the_o malignant_a design_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o as_o the_o devil_n will_v always_o be_v sow_v his_o tare_n of_o heresy_n and_o falsehood_n among_o the_o good_a wheat_n of_o divine_a truth_n so_o with_o the_o reformation_n of_o religion_n beside_o the_o bloody_a severity_n of_o romish_a bigot_n several_a of_o the_o ancient_a heresy_n be_v revive_v and_o particular_o that_o which_o deny_v the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o as_o it_o walk_v about_o former_o under_o several_a name_n so_o it_o have_v of_o late_a though_o as_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o independent_o the_o other_o day_n in_o spite_n of_o former_a feud_n be_v please_v to_o give_v themselves_o the_o paint_a title_n of_o unite_a brethren_n so_o those_o wretched_a heretic_n however_o at_o odds_o among_o themselves_o agree_v in_o the_o gay_a name_n of_o unitarian_n under_o which_o name_n turk_n and_o jew_n come_v as_o well_o and_o proper_o as_o they_o if_o they_o can_v be_v true_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n they_o unite_v indeed_o all_o in_o that_o one_o impious_a error_n in_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o heresy_n detestable_a to_o every_o sober_a and_o intelligent_a christian_a a_o heresy_n proper_a only_o to_o introduce_v deism_n and_o sadducism_n and_o to_o thrust_v true_a evangelical_n christianity_n out_o of_o door_n this_o all_o those_o who_o love_v their_o religion_n ought_v to_o oppose_v and_o declare_v against_o with_o as_o much_o zeal_n and_o care_n and_o more_o than_o they_o will_v against_o the_o foul_a error_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v for_o though_o there_o be_v so_o many_o falsity_n and_o absurdity_n propound_v to_o we_o in_o that_o communion_n yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o fly_v so_o direct_o in_o the_o face_n of_o almighty_a god_n as_o this_o it_o be_v folly_n enough_o to_o believe_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n christ_n universal_a vicar_n upon_o earth_n but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a stupidity_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n himself_o be_v no_o more_o true_o and_o original_o god_n than_o that_o pretend_a vicar_n it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o pray_v to_o saint_n or_o angel_n and_o to_o make_v they_o the_o ultimate_a object_n of_o our_o adoration_n it_o be_v great_a yet_o to_o make_v a_o mere_a man_n the_o object_n of_o the_o same_o devotion_n and_o to_o suppose_v he_o a_o make_v god_n and_o capable_a of_o do_v every_o thing_n for_o we_o we_o beg_v at_o his_o hand_n though_o he_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o creature_n as_o other_o at_o his_o first_o existence_n it_o be_v madness_n to_o believe_v that_o
grace_n unto_o the_o humble_a there_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o relate_v to_o religion_n wherein_o god_n have_v deliver_v himself_o so_o as_o to_o let_v we_o know_v word_n and_o name_n but_o have_v not_o reveal_v enough_o to_o give_v we_o a_o insight_n into_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v intimate_v under_o they_o man_n need_v not_o trouble_v themselves_o too_o curious_o about_o such_o thing_n moses_n teach_v the_o israelite_n very_o well_o 29.29_o deut._n 29.29_o the_o secret_a thing_n belong_v unto_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n give_v a_o excellent_a lesson_n seek_v not_o out_o thing_n that_o be_v too_o hard_o for_o thou_o neither_o search_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o thy_o strength_n 22._o ecclus._n 3.21_o 22._o but_o what_o be_v command_v thou_o think_v thereupon_o with_o reverence_n for_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a for_o thou_o to_o see_v with_o thy_o eye_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o secret_a what_o if_o among_o such_o thing_n i_o shall_v reckon_v man_n overcurious_a inquiry_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n decree_n which_o inquiry_n have_v produce_v a_o great_a many_o foolish_a and_o uncharitable_a controversy_n even_o among_o good_a man_n there_o be_v employment_n enough_o for_o a_o good_a man_n whole_a life_n in_o thing_n more_o needful_a to_o be_v know_v i_o will_v not_o say_v it_o be_v absolute_o unlawful_a to_o be_v pry_v into_o what_o god_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o express_v himself_o very_o obscure_o in_o but_o this_o i_o will_v say_v that_o whosoever_o will_v be_v walk_v in_o those_o private_a path_n have_v need_v to_o tread_v with_o a_o very_a gentle_a foot_n to_o look_v frequent_o backward_o and_o on_o each_o side_n as_o well_o as_o forward_o to_o be_v very_o distrustful_a of_o his_o own_o ability_n very_o submissive_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o superior_n in_o office_n age_n or_o gift_n very_o earnest_a and_o indefatigable_a in_o his_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o his_o assistance_n as_o he_o shall_v see_v fit_a to_o impart_v it_o on_o such_o a_o occasion_n very_o tender_a of_o impose_v his_o own_o judgement_n upon_o other_o and_o of_o be_v too_o positive_a in_o those_o opinion_n he_o take_v up_o since_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o reason_n a_o man_n frequent_o think_v he_o have_v make_v a_o very_a great_a discovery_n in_o some_o weighty_a point_n and_o hug_v himself_o with_o the_o plausibility_n of_o his_o thought_n he_o imagine_v as_o we_o be_v general_o apt_a to_o be_v very_o fond_a of_o the_o product_n of_o our_o own_o brain_n every_o thing_n he_o have_v lay_v down_o or_o methodise_v in_o his_o thought_n to_o be_v so_o very_o plain_a and_o clear_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a any_o man_n of_o sense_n shall_v not_o immediate_o be_v his_o proselyte_n and_o some_o perhaps_o be_v ready_a to_o flatter_v such_o a_o one_o in_o his_o overween_a conceit_n by_o a_o pretend_a concurrence_n in_o their_o sentiment_n with_o he_o after_o all_o it_o happen_v as_o often_o that_o another_o of_o as_o great_a natural_a ability_n and_o as_o search_v a_o head_n discover_v a_o great_a many_o mistake_v in_o the_o other_o beautiful_a scheme_n of_o thought_n and_o baffle_v the_o whole_a invention_n the_o other_o have_v admire_v himself_o for_o such_o thing_n ought_v to_o make_v all_o especial_o in_o religious_a matter_n where_o it_o be_v dangerous_a jest_n or_o innovate_a to_o act_v with_o abundance_n of_o circumspection_n and_o indeed_o rather_o to_o confine_v themselves_o to_o low_a study_n than_o to_o hazard_v the_o over-setting_a their_o own_o intellectual_n by_o engage_v into_o boundless_a inquiry_n those_o thing_n may_v in_o themselves_o be_v lawful_a which_o yet_o can_v be_v very_o convenient_a some_o such_o curiosity_n be_v very_o idle_a and_o ridiculous_a as_o dispute_v what_o god_n do_v before_o he_o make_v the_o world_n whether_o he_o can_v have_v pardon_v man_n sin_n without_o a_o mediator_n etc._n etc._n he_o be_v fatal_o answer_v to_o such_o a_o question_n who_o ask_v a_o eminent_a christian_a what_o the_o carpenter_n son_n meaning_n christ_n be_v then_o a_o do_v be_v tell_v he_o be_v make_v a_o coffin_n for_o such_o a_o lewd_a inquirer_n as_o himself_o who_o die_v in_o a_o very_a few_o hour_n after_o 3.23_o ecclus._n 3.23_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n advise_v well_o be_v not_o curious_a in_o unnecessary_a matter_n for_o more_o thing_n be_v show_v unto_o thou_o than_o man_n understand_v i_o e._n god_n have_v lay_v open_a such_o infinite_a treasure_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n before_o we_o and_o our_o understanding_n be_v so_o very_o short_a that_o we_o need_v not_o look_v out_o strange_a subject_n of_o our_o meditation_n it_o be_v enough_o if_o we_o can_v in_o some_o tolerable_a manner_n comprehend_v those_o sacred_a truth_n that_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o and_o we_o be_v more_o concern_v to_o endeavour_v to_o do_v so_o than_o some_o be_v ready_a to_o imagine_v for_o though_o a_o socinian_n may_v tell_v we_o god_n have_v declare_v several_a thing_n in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v no_o way_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o assertion_n be_v absurd_a and_o false_a that_o old_a axiom_n deus_fw-la &_o natura_fw-la nihil_fw-la faciunt_fw-la frustra_fw-la that_o god_n and_o nature_n never_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o vain_a be_v enough_o to_o refute_v it_o for_o since_o the_o end_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o make_v man_n wise_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v very_o bold_a to_o say_v god_n know_v not_o how_o to_o frame_v such_o a_o book_n without_o abundance_n of_o impertinency_n when_o we_o see_v many_o man_n set_v much_o slight_a end_n before_o themselves_o will_v yet_o prosecute_v their_o discourse_n in_o so_o close_a and_o exact_v a_o manner_n that_o the_o most_o critical_a judgement_n may_v perhaps_o find_v what_o to_o add_v but_o can_v find_v what_o to_o take_v away_o from_o their_o writing_n there_o be_v therefore_o no_o positive_a truth_n assert_v in_o holy_a writ_n but_o what_o be_v real_o useful_a to_o man_n salvation_n since_o there_o be_v nothing_o throughout_o the_o whole_a but_o what_o serve_v to_o illustrate_v god_n goodness_n and_o mercy_n and_o truth_n etc._n etc._n or_o man_n misery_n by_o sin_n or_o happiness_n by_o grace_n or_o lay_v down_o rule_v of_o life_n and_o practice_n or_o give_v we_o example_n of_o virtue_n or_o vice_n in_o other_o from_o all_o which_o something_o very_o instructive_a may_v be_v draw_v nor_o can_v we_o believe_v that_o even_o the_o genealogical_a table_n in_o scripture_n be_v as_o a_o late_a writer_n impudent_o suggest_v design_v only_o to_o amuse_v and_o confound_v we_o but_o to_o set_v we_o in_o a_o way_n to_o find_v how_o all_o the_o ancient_a prophecy_n centre_v in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o promise_a messiah_n as_o the_o positive_a assertion_n so_o their_o true_a and_o genuine_a consequence_n be_v in_o some_o sort_n and_o to_o some_o man_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n god_n have_v give_v great_a capacity_n and_o large_a soul_n to_o some_o than_o he_o have_v to_o other_o expect_v proportionable_a improvement_n from_o they_o and_o a_o man_n of_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n can_v be_v save_v only_o on_o the_o same_o term_n on_o which_o a_o person_n of_o low_a and_o mean_a endowment_n may_v therefore_o those_o of_o great_a part_n be_v bind_v to_o look_v into_o every_o thing_n divine_o reveal_v and_o to_o what_o may_v be_v regular_o deduce_v from_o it_o but_o as_o perfection_n in_o good_a work_n be_v require_v in_o every_o one_o that_o be_v to_o be_v save_v and_o yet_o many_o be_v save_v though_o none_o be_v perfect_o good_a so_o it_o be_v in_o relation_n to_o thing_n contain_v in_o scripture_n every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o study_v they_o thing_n of_o common_a practice_n be_v plain_a and_o obvious_a in_o they_o thing_n at_o first_o to_o be_v believe_v be_v take_v for_o grant_v but_o man_n be_v for_o his_o life-time_n employ_v and_o to_o be_v so_o in_o far_a search_n into_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o obscure_a can_v man_n once_o in_o his_o life-time_n attain_v to_o a_o perfect_a understanding_n of_o every_o thing_n set_v down_o there_o there_o will_v quick_o be_v a_o end_n of_o all_o sacred_a study_n but_o since_o the_o wise_a find_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o than_o they_o can_v understand_v and_o yet_o find_v they_o every_o day_n by_o study_n understand_v more_o and_o more_o and_o the_o mean_a wit_n upon_o a_o due_a care_n and_o industry_n find_v proportionable_a advance_n there_o be_v always_o enough_o to_o excite_v man_n utmost_a diligence_n and_o care_n and_o as_o in_o practical_a piety_n so_o it_o be_v here_o he_o that_o improve_v his_o time_n best_o to_o get_v knowledge_n though_o he_o can_v reach_v to_o all_o he_o shall_v his_o defect_n shall_v be_v pardon_v for_o his_o sake_n who_o in_o himself_o contain_v consummate_v wisdom_n but_o it_o remain_v still_o true_a
the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n for_o let_v we_o with_o grotius_n by_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n understand_v the_o gospel_n as_o we_o common_o understand_v it_o and_o which_o we_o own_o do_v contain_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v by_o weak_a man_n we_o own_o nay_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o in_o his_o state_n of_o exinanition_n or_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n appear_v weak_a and_o contemptible_a enough_o we_o own_v too_o but_o that_o the_o gospel_n appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n or_o clothe_v with_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a import_n of_o the_o apostle_n phrase_n we_o deny_v as_o absurd_a that_o the_o gospel_n be_v justify_v in_o or_o by_o the_o spirit_n the_o miraculous_a effusion_n of_o that_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v we_o may_v own_v well_o enough_o but_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v see_v of_o angel_n be_v scarce_o sense_n that_o it_o be_v never_o know_v before_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v by_o man_n be_v false_a for_o the_o angel_n can_v not_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o several_a prophecy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n concern_v the_o messiah_n to_o come_v nor_o can_v they_o be_v so_o far_o to_o seek_v in_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o prophecy_n many_o of_o which_o they_o have_v be_v instrumental_a in_o deliver_v and_o the_o angel_n themselves_o be_v indeed_o the_o first_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n tell_v zacharias_n concern_v the_o son_n that_o shall_v be_v bear_v to_o he_o many_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v he_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v go_v before_o he_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n 17._o luke_n 1.16_o 17._o and_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a to_o make_v ready_a a_o people_n prepare_v for_o the_o lord_n the_o same_o gabriel_n afterward_o tell_v the_o bless_a virgin_n behold_v thou_o shall_v conceive_v in_o thy_o womb_n and_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n 33._o v._o 31_o 32_o 33._o he_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o father_n david_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n it_o be_v a_o angel_n that_o appear_v to_o joseph_n in_o a_o dream_n 21._o matth._n 1.20_o 21._o and_o tell_v he_o that_o his_o espouse_a wife_n be_v with_o child_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o she_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n say_v he_o and_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n for_o he_o shall_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n again_o a_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n tell_v the_o shepherd_n who_o be_v watch_v their_o flock_n by_o night_n 14._o luke_n 2.10_o 11_o 13_o 14._o behold_v i_o bring_v you_o good_a tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n which_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o people_n for_o unto_o you_o be_v bear_v this_o day_n in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n a_o saviour_n which_o be_v christ_n the_o lord_n to_o which_o gospel_n a_o whole_a choir_n of_o angel_n subjoin_v their_o eucharistical_a hymn_n glory_n be_v to_o god_n on_o high_a in_o earth_n peace_n good_a will_n towards_o man_n these_o instance_n be_v enough_o to_o prove_v that_o angel_n know_v the_o gospel_n before_o man_n preach_v it_o not_o to_o mention_v their_o administer_a to_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o wilderness_n when_o enter_v on_o his_o prophetical_a office_n and_o their_o publish_v his_o resurrection_n the_o great_a confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n before_o his_o apostle_n have_v any_o apprehension_n of_o it_o the_o gospel_n be_v indeed_o preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n and_o believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v far_o from_o be_v receive_v in_o glory_n for_o it_o be_v scorn_v and_o deride_v and_o cruel_o persecute_v both_o by_o jew_n and_o gentile_n the_o devil_n raise_v all_o the_o power_n in_o the_o world_n as_o far_o as_o possible_a for_o the_o extirpation_n of_o what_o be_v so_o great_a a_o enemy_n to_o his_o tyranny_n the_o gospel_n than_o will_v not_o answer_v all_o those_o particular_a mark_n set_v down_o in_o the_o text._n neither_o yet_o be_v they_o applicable_a to_o god_n the_o father_n as_o several_a of_o the_o socinian_o will_v have_v they_o for_o to_o say_v god_n the_o father_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n because_o his_o will_n be_v preach_v by_o man_n who_o be_v but_o flesh_n and_o blood_n beside_o that_o such_o a_o assertion_n quit_v the_o suppositum_fw-la or_o subject_a which_o be_v god_n the_o father_n unless_o god_n and_o god_n will_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v assert_v it_o be_v so_o uncouth_a a_o expression_n as_o be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v parallel_v either_o in_o scripture_n or_o any_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n we_o read_v not_o any_o where_n that_o god_n the_o father_n ever_o appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n or_o assume_v humane_a nature_n nor_o do_v ever_o any_o dream_n of_o such_o a_o thing_n unless_o we_o recur_v to_o the_o ancient_a patropassian_o so_o call_v because_o they_o believe_v it_o be_v real_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v incarnate_a suffer_v death_n on_o the_o cross_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o mankind_n but_o of_o that_o we_o have_v no_o footstep_n in_o holy_a writ_n nor_o be_v the_o deity_n itself_o ever_o make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o bless_a jesus_n 2.9_o col._n 2.9_o in_o who_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a not_o in_o his_o doctrine_n as_o the_o socinian_o will_v have_v it_o but_o in_o himself_o loc_n vid._n schlicktin_n in_o loc_n and_o according_a to_o their_o own_o demand_n on_o the_o like_a occasion_n we_o will_v have_v they_o show_v we_o some_o other_o clear_a place_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o god_n the_o father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n or_o to_o be_v manifest_a in_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o we_o may_v the_o better_a consent_n to_o their_o interpretation_n again_o it_o be_v as_o odd_a and_o unusual_a to_o say_v god_n the_o father_n be_v justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n for_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o any_o such_o justification_n his_o eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n be_v visible_a in_o the_o universal_a fabric_n of_o nature_n and_o all_o the_o miracle_n do_v by_o our_o saviour_n which_o socinian_n refer_v to_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v do_v that_o man_n may_v know_v he_o be_v the_o promise_a messiah_n and_o those_o do_v by_o the_o apostle_n after_o his_o ascent_n into_o heaven_n carry_v along_o with_o they_o the_o same_o respect_n but_o we_o never_o hear_v of_o any_o public_a declaration_n make_v by_o the_o spirit_n for_o a_o more_o peculiar_a conviction_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v god_n indeed_o or_o the_o true_a god_n we_o may_v understand_v thing_n thus_o as_o the_o socinian_o say_v but_o we_o may_v a_o great_a deal_n better_o let_v it_o alone_o and_o not_o run_v into_o such_o interpretation_n of_o god_n word_n as_o we_o can_v neither_o reconcile_v to_o truth_n nor_o sense_n if_o we_o go_v far_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o mend_v at_o all_o when_o we_o say_v god_n the_o father_n be_v see_v of_o angel_n for_o what_o novelty_n be_v there_o in_o that_o have_v not_o they_o stand_v continual_o before_o his_o face_n from_o the_o instant_n of_o their_o first_o creation_n or_o shall_v we_o fly_v to_o god_n will_n be_v not_o that_o know_v to_o his_o peculiar_a minister_n till_o such_o time_n as_o they_o come_v to_o learn_v it_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o mortal_a man_n who_o can_v imagine_v so_o short_a a_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o design_v to_o make_v know_v the_o great_a mystery_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v lash_v out_o into_o such_o absolute_a impertinency_n but_o to_o proceed_v god_n the_o father_n be_v preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n but_o where_o he_o be_v mention_v often_o doubtless_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o those_o epistle_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o their_o gentile_n convert_v but_o the_o gospel_n itself_o be_v style_v the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n pretend_v to_o preach_v nay_o to_o know_v nothing_o among_o their_o convert_v but_o jesus_n christ_n 2.2_o 1_o cor._n 2.2_o and_o he_o crucify_v as_o st._n paul_n express_v himself_o if_o we_o must_v say_v god_n the_o father_n be_v preach_v he_o be_v certain_o preach_v most_o to_o the_o antediluvian_n world_n by_o noah_n and_o the_o elder_a patriarch_n or_o he_o be_v preach_v
deep_a ever_o to_o be_v make_v up_o it_o be_v true_a when_o god_n himself_o be_v mention_v as_o the_o undertaker_n of_o so_o great_a a_o work_n even_o despair_v man_n may_v entertain_v some_o dawn_a hope_n but_o when_o they_o see_v a_o poor_a carpenter_n son_n one_o who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n assume_v yet_o the_o glorious_a title_n of_o the_o world_n redeemer_n and_o saviour_n their_o hope_n slag_v their_o almost_o grasp_v joy_n seem_v just_a vanish_v into_o empty_a air_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n god_n too_o infinite_o good_a and_o powerful_a and_o wise_a interpose_v and_o attend_v that_o humble_a man_n with_o so_o much_o vigour_n and_o constancy_n that_o he_o by_o a_o thousand_o glorious_a action_n and_o by_o a_o close_a and_o perpetual_a correspondence_n with_o heaven_n visible_a even_o to_o vulgar_a eye_n prove_v the_o entire_a union_n that_o be_v between_o himself_o and_o his_o father_n and_o that_o sacred_a spirit_n and_o justify_v himself_o in_o the_o thought_n of_o very_a alien_n themselves_o who_o can_v not_o but_o acknowledge_v of_o a_o truth_n that_o for_o all_o his_o mean_a appearance_n and_o his_o scandalous_a passion_n on_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o can_v man_n have_v doubt_v still_o the_o happy_a angel_n those_o pure_a and_o more_o discern_a spirit_n see_v he_o too_o they_o see_v he_o and_o know_v he_o and_o adore_v he_o they_o see_v their_o mighty_a lord_n though_o veil_v in_o all_o the_o rag_n of_o poor_a mortality_n and_o though_o sin_n may_v have_v make_v a_o former_a breach_n between_o those_o bless_a spirit_n and_o pollute_a man_n yet_o now_o where_o their_o lord_n love_v they_o love_v too_o and_o always_o look_v and_o always_o wait_v on_o he_o while_o he_o wrought_v the_o world_n redemption_n while_o he_o be_v so_o justify_v and_o so_o attend_v on_o divers_z give_v up_o themselves_o absolute_o to_o his_o service_n who_o he_o love_v and_o teach_v and_o protect_v and_o endue_v with_o miraculous_a knowledge_n eloquence_n and_o courage_n and_o send_v they_o on_o that_o bless_a errand_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n in_o his_o name_n they_o bold_o undertake_v the_o work_n and_o though_o they_o have_v ignorance_n and_o prejudice_n and_o malice_n and_o cunning_a to_o contend_v with_o mere_a man_n contemn_v before_o but_o then_o inspire_v break_v through_o all_o opposition_n and_o the_o forsake_a gentile_n hear_v the_o gladsome_a sound_n of_o peace_n and_o though_o there_o be_v too_o many_o enemy_n to_o their_o own_o good_a yet_o those_o laborious_a messenger_n of_o heaven_n preach_v with_o that_o power_n and_o efficacy_n that_o man_n begin_v every_o where_o to_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n nay_o the_o more_o man_n of_o perverse_a mind_n cross_v the_o design_n of_o that_o gospel_n preach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o more_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v multiply_v as_o for_o himself_o when_o he_o have_v finish_v that_o stupendous_a work_n and_o by_o his_o own_o death_n have_v conquer_v hell_n and_o death_n he_o break_v those_o fatal_a chain_n and_o rise_v again_o no_o more_o liable_a to_o humane_a rage_n his_o almighty_a father_n who_o have_v view_v all_o the_o prodigious_a effort_n of_o his_o love_n to_o mankind_n with_o a_o ineffable_a complacency_n reach_v out_o his_o holy_a arm_n to_o receive_v that_o very_o humane_a nature_n in_o which_o his_o belove_a son_n have_v do_v and_o suffer_v so_o much_o from_o he_o the_o cheerful_a cloud_n be_v send_v for_o a_o chariot_n and_o he_o go_v upward_o fly_v upon_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o wind_n while_o j●cund_a angel_n those_o ministerial_a flame_n wait_v on_o his_o triumph_n and_o teach_v his_o wonder_a follower_n what_o they_o be_v afterward_o to_o expect_v from_o their_o redeemer_n these_o be_v those_o mighty_a mystery_n on_o which_o our_o most_o holy_a faith_n be_v build_v their_o truth_n however_o unintelligible_a to_o we_o be_v our_o security_n and_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o faith_n will_v necessary_o show_v itself_o in_o a_o holy_a conversation_n and_o godliness_n the_o verse_n i_o have_v explain_v then_o import_v that_o without_o controversy_n the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n be_v great_a or_o in_o more_o word_n that_o the_o basis_n or_o foundation_n of_o that_o religion_n introduce_v into_o the_o world_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n gospel_n be_v indisputable_o and_o agreeable_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o religion_n to_o humane_a reason_n extreme_o profound_a and_o unintelligible_a to_o prove_v this_o we_o shall_v inquire_v into_o the_o universal_a agreement_n of_o all_o person_n of_o what_o religion_n soever_o that_o mystery_n be_v essential_a to_o religion_n whether_o our_o saviour_n intend_v the_o entire_a abolition_n of_o all_o other_o religion_n for_o the_o settlement_n of_o his_o own_o or_o rather_o to_o unite_v what_o be_v good_a in_o every_o distinct_a religion_n into_o one_o and_o to_o sublime_a or_o perfect_a that_o so_o as_o it_o may_v tend_v most_o to_o god_n glory_n and_o man_n happiness_n and_o whether_o that_o can_v be_v effect_v man_n stand_v in_o their_o present_a corrupt_a state_n without_o the_o retain_v of_o old_a or_o institute_v of_o new_a mystery_n in_o his_o religion_n what_o considerable_a advantage_n can_v accrue_v to_o religion_n from_o those_o mystery_n it_o be_v found_v upon_o then_o we_o must_v inquire_v into_o that_o universal_a agreement_n of_o all_o person_n whatsoever_o that_o mystery_n or_o some_o principle_n or_o circumstance_n of_o a_o more_o secret_a and_o abstruse_a nature_n be_v essential_a to_o all_o religion_n but_o here_o to_o prevent_v all_o mistake_n it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v the_o practical_a part_n of_o religion_n as_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v just_o apply_v to_o they_o if_o they_o be_v hide_v they_o be_v hide_v to_o those_o that_o be_v lose_v who_o eye_n the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v not_o shine_v upon_o they_o 4._o 2_o cor._n 4.3_o 4._o the_o word_n whereby_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v do_v towards_o the_o attainment_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v express_v be_v such_o and_o so_o plain_a that_o the_o simple_a christian_n may_v understand_v they_o and_o that_o person_n who_o go_v about_o to_o involve_v the_o practical_a duty_n of_o a_o christian_a whether_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o communication_n with_o god_n or_o man_n in_o obscure_a and_o mysterious_a term_n cross_v the_o end_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v to_o instruct_v the_o weak_a understanding_n in_o a_o easy_a and_o intelligible_a way_n how_o to_o live_v godly_a righteous_o and_o sober_o in_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o even_o in_o relation_n to_o practice_n there_o be_v some_o apparent_a difficulty_n and_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o plainness_n apparent_a in_o god_n word_n a_o man_n have_v a_o very_a hard_a task_n sometime_o to_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v lawful_a and_o what_o be_v unlawful_a such_o case_n be_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n or_o such_o matter_n wherein_o so_o many_o argument_n seem_o strong_a and_o plausible_a appear_v on_o both_o side_n to_o the_o understanding_n that_o it_o know_v not_o which_o way_n to_o act_v and_o all_o that_o hesitancy_n or_o doubtfulness_n arise_v only_o from_o a_o fear_n of_o offend_a god_n these_o general_o respect_v christian_n practice_n create_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n frequent_o to_o very_o good_a man_n for_o other_o be_v seldom_o trouble_v with_o such_o religious_a fear_n and_o these_o be_v sometime_o by_o various_a and_o unusual_a circumstance_n render_v so_o very_o intricate_a that_o the_o wise_a and_o most_o discern_a man_n be_v often_o at_o a_o loss_n to_o clear_v and_o resolve_v they_o to_o the_o querent_n satisfaction_n here_o the_o jew_n be_v order_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o their_o priest_n who_o lip_n be_v suppose_v to_o preserve_v knowledge_n and_o the_o priest_n when_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n of_o a_o more_o inextricable_a nature_n have_v the_o urim_n and_o thummim_a to_o appeal_v to_o the_o heathen_n have_v some_o emergent_a doubt_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o public_a management_n of_o themselves_o which_o sometime_o perplex_v they_o too_o and_o they_o have_v their_o imaginary_a wise_a man_n the_o priest_n attend_v their_o desecrated_a altar_n who_o will_v assume_v as_o if_o they_o have_v the_o art_n of_o resolve_v doubt_n those_o who_o profess_v christianity_n have_v still_o a_o severe_a task_n in_o these_o matter_n as_o have_v no_o oracle_n immediate_o to_o consult_v and_o have_v doubt_n more_o numerous_a and_o
most_o uncertain_a future_a contingency_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o these_o notorious_a instance_n of_o their_o wretched_a ignorances_n god_n must_v lay_v his_o whole_a divine_a power_n and_o wisdom_n at_o their_o foot_n or_o else_o he_o must_v be_v no_o god_n for_o they_o we_o may_v say_v with_o a_o little_a alteration_n of_o david_n word_n man_n overvalue_v his_o own_o wisdom_n have_v no_o understanding_n but_o be_v like_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v if_o he_o can_v comprehend_v god_n he_o will_v despise_v he_o since_o he_o can_v he_o will_v deny_v he_o a_o humour_n uncouth_a and_o unnatural_a even_o to_o corrupt_a reason_n but_o the_o true_o wise_a man_n when_o he_o see_v himself_o thus_o puzzle_v with_o every_o little_a effect_n of_o common_a nature_n be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o great_a sovereign_n of_o all_o thing_n shall_v say_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n above_o his_o understanding_n that_o he_o rather_o will_v wonder_v do_v he_o not_o acknowledge_v both_o omnipotence_n and_o omniscience_n in_o god_n how_o so_o excellent_a a_o be_v shall_v possible_o stoop_v so_o low_a as_o to_o make_v any_o thing_n concern_v himself_o intelligible_a to_o a_o corrupt_a transgress_a creature_n the_o more_o he_o look_v upward_o to_o god_n the_o ordainer_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o ready_a he_o be_v to_o break_v out_o into_o that_o expression_n of_o the_o psalmist_n when_o i_o consider_v the_o heaven_n the_o work_n of_o thy_o finger_n 8.3_o psal_n 8.3_o the_o moon_n and_o the_o star_n which_o thou_o have_v ordain_v lord_n what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o shall_v consider_v he_o or_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o thou_o visite_a he_o the_o more_o he_o meditate_v on_o god_n infinite_a perfection_n the_o more_o humble_o sensible_a he_o grow_v of_o his_o own_o want_n and_o easy_o can_v see_v at_o how_o sad_a a_o loss_n wretched_a man_n will_v have_v be_v for_o obtain_v that_o divine_a favour_n which_o he_o have_v forfeit_v by_o sin_n have_v not_o somewhat_o almighty_a interpose_v nor_o can_v he_o be_v but_o extreme_o humble_v in_o his_o own_o thought_n when_o he_o see_v how_o unsearchable_a god_n wisdom_n be_v and_o his_o way_n past_o find_v out_o since_o he_o out_o of_o such_o strange_a confusion_n as_o sin_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n can_v produce_v order_n and_o by_o the_o most_o improbable_a and_o unsuspected_a mean_n can_v once_o more_o lay_v open_a to_o man_n the_o way_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n that_o way_n which_o sin_n have_v shut_v up_o before_o the_o more_o a_o contemplative_a man_n learn_v to_o admire_v his_o god_n in_o this_o case_n the_o more_o he_o learn_v to_o undervalue_v himself_o and_o never_o to_o depend_v upon_o his_o own_o dream_n and_o imagination_n by_o those_o mystery_n attend_v religion_n in_o general_n man_n be_v in_o the_o better_a capacity_n to_o make_v a_o judgement_n of_o religion_n of_o all_o age_n and_o to_o fix_v themselves_o upon_o that_o alone_a which_o be_v proper_a to_o conduct_v we_o through_o a_o troublesome_a world_n to_o everlasting_a happiness_n the_o nature_n of_o any_o religious_a profession_n may_v be_v distinguish_v by_o such_o characteristic_n for_o since_o god_n as_o he_o manifest_v himself_o to_o mankind_n be_v unquestionable_o a_o very_a benign_a and_o merciful_a be_v that_o religion_n which_o have_v the_o close_a correspondence_n with_o such_o manifestation_n of_o himself_o must_v certain_o be_v the_o most_o please_a to_o god_n and_o consequent_o the_o best_a mystic_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n have_v be_v various_a and_o though_o the_o devil_n have_v his_o design_n in_o the_o invention_n of_o several_a yet_o man_n too_o who_o use_v they_o have_v as_o before_o i_o prove_v in_o all_o of_o they_o some_o particular_a respect_n to_o futurity_n and_o that_o happiness_n expect_v by_o mean_n of_o a_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n but_o as_o god_n be_v never_o please_v by_o unclean_a offering_n so_o much_o less_o can_v he_o be_v please_v with_o humane_a blood_n offer_v upon_o altar_n devote_v to_o he_o however_o such_o sacrifice_n may_v be_v think_v to_o prefigure_v best_o the_o shed_n of_o christ_n blood_n that_o blood_n without_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o remission_n and_o therefore_o we_o find_v that_o though_o god_n try_v abraham_n faith_n and_o obedience_n by_o that_o severe_a command_n that_o he_o shall_v offer_v up_o his_o only_a son_n a_o burn_a offering_n to_o he_o and_o though_o he_o permit_v the_o good_a old_a patriarch_n to_o go_v on_o a_o great_a way_n towards_o put_v the_o command_n in_o execution_n yet_o when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v the_o fatal_a stroke_n he_o stop_v his_o hand_n and_o accept_v the_o readiness_n to_o offer_v it_o better_o than_o he_o will_v have_v accept_v the_o sacrifice_n itself_o when_o actual_o make_v therefore_o whatsoever_o mystery_n savour_v any_o thing_n of_o cruelty_n be_v enough_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o to_o desecrate_v that_o persuasion_n which_o admit_v of_o such_o thing_n again_o whereas_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o any_o considerable_a notion_n of_o a_o god_n will_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v infinite_o holy_a and_o pure_a and_o consequent_o to_o love_v the_o same_o holiness_n and_o purity_n in_o his_o creature_n wheresoever_o any_o mystic_a rite_n have_v at_o any_o time_n trespass_v upon_o such_o purity_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v god_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o such_o worship_n a_o brand_n in_o this_o case_n the_o pagan_a zeal_n endeavour_v to_o fix_v upon_o the_o christian_n as_o well_o know_v how_o odious_a such_o a_o charge_n will_v render_v they_o thus_o caecilius_n in_o minutius_n foelix_fw-la have_v before_o charge_v the_o christian_n with_o murder_a and_o devour_a infant_n he_o add_v hackian_n minutii_n foelicis_fw-la oct._n p._n 90._o edit_fw-la hackian_n on_o a_o certain_a day_n the_o christian_n man_n woman_n and_o child_n of_o every_o age_n and_o sex_n meet_v together_o at_o a_o feast_n after_o much_o junket_v when_o their_o incestuous_a lust_n grow_v hot_a a_o dog_n tie_v on_o purpose_n to_o the_o candlestick_n pull_v it_o down_o extinguish_v the_o light_n and_o then_o in_o the_o dark_a they_o promiscuous_o pollute_v one_o another_o with_o fornication_n adultery_n incest_n and_o what_o not_o but_o pliny_n as_o much_o a_o heathen_a as_o himself_o vindicate_v the_o abuse_a christian_n from_o that_o horrid_a calumny_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o trajan_n where_o he_o inform_v that_o emperor_n that_o he_o have_v find_v by_o certain_a intelligence_n that_o the_o christian_n on_o a_o set_a day_n be_v wont_a to_o meet_v before_o it_o be_v light_a and_o alternate_o to_o sing_v a_o hymn_n to_o christ_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n séque_fw-la sacramento_fw-la non_fw-la in_o scelus_fw-la aliquod_fw-la obstringere_fw-la sed_fw-la nè_fw-la furta_fw-la nè_fw-la latrocinia_fw-la nè_fw-la adulteria_fw-la committerent_fw-la nè_fw-la fidem_fw-la fallerent_fw-la etc._n etc._n i._n e._n and_o they_o do_v by_o solemn_a oath_n engage_v themselves_o not_o to_o any_o wickedness_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o steal_v nor_o murder_n nor_o commit_v adultery_n nor_o perjure_v themselves_o etc._n etc._n now_o how_o those_o who_o enter_v into_o such_o solemn_a mutual_a engagement_n not_o to_o commit_v such_o sin_n shall_v yet_o be_v so_o notorious_o guilty_a of_o the_o worst_a of_o crime_n and_o how_o such_o very_a guilty_a person_n and_o such_o horrid_a abomination_n 97._o plinii_n epistol_n l._n 10_o ep._n 97._o shall_v have_v escape_v pliny_n cognizance_n who_o have_v make_v it_o his_o particular_a business_n to_o inquire_v into_o the_o behaviour_n of_o christian_n it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o imagine_v but_o howsoever_o false_o these_o thing_n be_v charge_v upon_o christian_n they_o be_v true_a enough_o among_o the_o heathen_n where_o the_o eleusinian_n rite_n among_o the_o grecian_n those_o of_o the_o bona_fw-la dea_fw-la among_o the_o roman_n with_o their_o bacchanalia_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v nothing_o but_o so_o many_o subtle_a contrivance_n to_o render_v all_o manner_n of_o lewdness_n and_o villainy_n authentic_a and_o valuable_a on_o which_o account_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v his_o ephesian_n 12._o ephes_n 5.11_o 12._o to_o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o such_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n but_o rather_o to_o reprove_v they_o for_o that_o its_o a_o shame_n to_o speak_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v of_o they_o in_o secret_a far_o yet_o whereas_o god_n have_v now_o real_o by_o his_o son_n accomplish_v that_o great_a work_n of_o the_o world_n redemption_n those_o mystic_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o fore-signified_n that_o to_o be_v do_v be_v now_o vacate_v and_o those_o who_o will_v have_v mystery_n of_o that_o nature_n still_o continue_v do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o drive_v the_o world_n into_o a_o aversion_n from_o he_o who_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o save_v to_o the_o uttermost_a all_o those_o who_o come_v to_o god_n by_o he_o
know_v every_o thing_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v clear_o and_o full_o in_o himself_o his_o humane_a nature_n live_v not_o only_o in_o a_o strict_a friendship_n but_o in_o a_o close_a and_o complete_a union_n with_o the_o godhead_n and_o therefore_o feel_v no_o convulsion_n or_o ecstasy_n no_o violent_a emotion_n of_o his_o rational_a faculty_n nor_o be_v he_o confine_v to_o time_n or_o place_n or_o common_a rule_n and_o method_n but_o as_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v in_o he_o so_o he_o deliver_v oracle_n to_o mankind_n at_o all_o time_n as_o he_o himself_o please_v for_o god_n do_v not_o give_v the_o spirit_n to_o he_o by_o measure_n 3.34_o job_n 3.34_o thus_o inspire_v david_n publish_v that_o eternal_a decree_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n 8._o ps_n ●_o 7_o 8._o and_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o thy_o possession_n which_o can_v never_o be_v true_a in_o respect_n of_o david_n who_o never_o acquire_v so_o vast_a a_o empire_n as_o be_v there_o promise_v but_o it_o be_v real_o acquire_v by_o our_o saviour_n who_o by_o his_o holy_a gospel_n subdue_v the_o universe_n and_o make_v all_o mankind_n partaker_n of_o that_o redemption_n wrought_v for_o they_o by_o himself_o and_o so_o saint_n paul_n preach_v christ_n to_o the_o jew_n at_o antioch_n in_o pisidia_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o their_o father_n god_n have_v fulfil_v to_o they_o their_o child_n have_v raise_v up_o jesus_n again_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o second_o psalm_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o 33._o act_n 13.32_o 33._o and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n prove_v his_o superiority_n to_o angel_n by_o that_o argument_n for_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v god_n at_o any_o time_n 1.5_o hebr._n 1.5_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o to_o prove_v the_o mission_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n have_v say_v before_o that_o no_o man_n take_v the_o priestly_a honour_n to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aaron_n he_o plead_v so_o christ_n glorify_v not_o himself_o to_o be_v make_v a_o highpriest_n 5._o heb._n 5.4_o 5._o but_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n to_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o so_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o due_a application_n of_o the_o prophecy_n which_o we_o shall_v dilate_v on_o far_a in_o another_o place_n such_o again_o be_v that_o of_o david_n in_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n afterward_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n 8._o psal_n 40.6_o 7_o 8._o sacrifice_n and_o burnt-offering_a thou_o do_v not_o desire_v my_o ear_n have_v thou_o open_v intimate_v by_o that_o the_o inefficacy_n of_o all_o those_o legal_a and_o typical_a sacrifice_n which_o the_o jew_n and_o in_o imitation_n of_o they_o other_o have_v be_v use_v to_o for_o if_o these_o sacrifice_n can_v have_v avail_v for_o the_o take_v away_o of_o sin_n they_o have_v no_o long_o be_v type_n and_o shadow_n but_o thing_n of_o a_o real_a and_o substantial_a excellency_n which_o since_o they_o be_v not_o burnt-offering_a and_o sin-offering_a have_v thou_o not_o require_v then_o say_v i_o lo_o i_o come_v in_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o book_n it_o be_v write_v of_o i_o i_o delight_v to_o do_v thy_o will_n 5-10_a hebr._n 10_o 5-10_a o_o my_o god_n yea_o thy_o law_n be_v within_o my_o heart_n and_o thus_o this_o prophecy_n be_v apply_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n only_o with_o that_o difference_n that_o whereas_o the_o psalm_n have_v it_o my_o ear_n have_v thou_o open_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o apostle_n follow_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n and_o render_v it_o a_o body_n have_v thou_o prepare_v for_o i_o the_o sense_n amount_v still_o to_o the_o same_o for_o as_o the_o hebrew_n according_a to_o the_o law_n make_v a_o servant_n their_o own_o for_o ever_o by_o open_v their_o ear_n or_o bore_v they_o 6._o exod_n 21_o 6._o so_o god_n make_v his_o son_n jesus_n obedient_a as_o a_o servant_n by_o prepare_v he_o a_o body_n which_o be_v open_v too_o and_o fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n as_o the_o servants_z ear_n in_o bore_v to_o the_o post_n of_o the_o door_n nor_o be_v that_o less_o plain_a or_o considerable_a the_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o lord_n sit_v thou_o on_o my_o right_a hand_n until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n the_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o will_v not_o repent_v 14_a psal_n 110_o 14_a thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o our_o saviour_n who_o undoubted_o know_v its_o true_a meaning_n assume_v to_o himself_o and_o confound_v the_o pharisee_n by_o ask_v they_o that_o question_n that_o whereas_o it_o be_v expect_v the_o messiah_n shall_v be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n yet_o david_n call_v he_o lord_n 41-45_a matth._n 22_o 41-45_a how_o can_v he_o be_v his_o lord_n and_o his_o son_n too_o which_o be_v a_o mystery_n inexplicable_a to_o those_o who_o have_v mere_a carnal_a and_o mean_a notion_n of_o the_o messiah_n but_o a_o difficulty_n which_o when_o they_o get_v over_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o very_o hard_o to_o believe_v he_o humble_a and_o despicable_a as_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o very_a messiah_n they_o look_v for_o for_o if_o he_o who_o be_v david_n lord_n and_o indeed_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o can_v condescend_v so_o low_a as_o to_o be_v david_n son_n it_o can_v not_o be_v strange_a that_o he_o who_o be_v david_n son_n shall_v stoop_v low_a yet_o and_o appear_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n the_o latter_a part_n of_o this_o prediction_n relate_v to_o a_o priest_n be_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n apply_v to_o jesus_n 17-21_a hebr._n 7_o 17-21_a as_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o legitimacy_n and_o eternity_n of_o his_o priesthood_n of_o the_o same_o authority_n be_v that_o ●●_o 〈◊〉_d 18_o 〈◊〉_d ●●_o the_o stone_n which_o the_o bvilder_n refuse_v be_v become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n this_o be_v the_o lord_n be_v do_v and_o it_o be_v marvellous_a in_o our_o eye_n which_o not_o to_o mention_v the_o jewish_a fable_n of_o such_o a_o stone_n be_v real_a meet_v withal_o in_o the_o build_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n which_o have_v by_o several_a be_v throw_v aside_o as_o useless_a yet_o afterward_o by_o miracle_n be_v find_v fit_a for_o the_o join_n of_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o build_n our_o saviour_n make_v use_v of_o to_o convince_v the_o jew_n of_o their_o folly_n and_o obstinacy_n in_o refuse_v to_o own_v he_o in_o his_o great_a mediatorian_a office_n and_o to_o let_v they_o see_v that_o their_o contempt_n of_o he_o can_v be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o his_o sacred_a dignity_n and_o honour_n but_o that_o he_o who_o be_v now_o think_v too_o inconsiderable_a to_o be_v of_o any_o use_n to_o the_o jew_n one_o of_o the_o small_a of_o the_o nation_n 44._o matth._n 21.42_o 43_o 44._o shall_v afterward_o appear_v great_a enough_o to_o join_v man_n of_o all_o country_n and_o nation_n together_o in_o one_o sacred_a bond_n and_o to_o crush_v all_o his_o enemy_n in_o dreadful_a ruin_n for_o so_o he_o add_v on_o repetition_n of_o those_o before_o quote_v word_n therefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o you_o and_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v fall_v on_o this_o stone_n shall_v be_v break_v but_o on_o whosoever_o it_o shall_v fall_v it_o will_v grind_v he_o to_o powder_n and_o this_o advancement_n and_o dilatation_n of_o christ_n power_n st._n peter_n just_o take_v notice_n of_o from_o the_o same_o psalm_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o cripple_n new_o cure_v 12._o act_n 4_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o if_o we_o be_v this_o day_n examine_v of_o the_o good_a deed_n do_v to_o the_o impotent_a man_n by_o what_o mean_v he_o be_v make_v whole_a be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o nazareth_n who_o you_o crucify_v who_o god_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a even_o by_o he_o do_v this_o man_n stand_v before_o you_o whole_a this_o be_v the_o stone_n which_o be_v set_v at_o nought_o of_o you_o bvilder_n which_o be_v become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n give_v among_o man_n whereby_o we_o must_v be_v save_v that_o of_o isaiah_n be_v whole_o extraordinary_a and_o as_o i_o hint_v
before_o it_o be_v a_o sure_a sign_n of_o some_o extraordinary_a person_n intend_v it_o give_v we_o the_o very_a name_n proper_a to_o our_o jesus_n as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o bear_v a_o son_n 7.14_o isai_n 7.14_o and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n immanuel_n where_o the_o thing_n foretell_v be_v so_o much_o a_o miracle_n that_o it_o can_v be_v believe_v to_o have_v occur_v more_o than_o once_o in_o the_o world_n nay_o the_o prodigiousness_n of_o the_o thing_n have_v make_v some_o great_a pretender_n to_o reason_n endeavour_v to_o weaken_v the_o very_a authority_n of_o scripture_n itself_o from_o the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o thing_n foretell_v and_o the_o jew_n have_v endeavour_v to_o affix_v a_o large_a sense_n upon_o the_o text_n as_o if_o no_o more_o be_v mean_v than_o bare_o that_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v with_o child_n and_o so_o the_o miracle_n be_v whole_o take_v away_o but_o all_o these_o little_a stratagem_n of_o unbeliever_n have_v fail_v and_o the_o very_a name_n add_v will_v convince_v considerate_a man_n of_o some_o great_a thing_n design_v since_o a_o mere_a man_n or_o one_o come_v into_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n can_v not_o be_v true_o call_v immanuel_n or_o god_n with_o we_o this_o declaration_n of_o the_o evangelical_n prophet_n as_o he_o be_v just_o call_v be_v soon_o follow_v by_o another_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n for_o unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v 7._o isai_n 9_o 6_o 7._o unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v and_o the_o government_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o government_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n upon_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o his_o kingdom_n to_o order_v it_o and_o to_o establish_v it_o with_o judgement_n and_o with_o justice_n from_o henceforth_o even_o for_o ever_o in_o all_o which_o the_o prophet_n seem_v to_o write_v a_o perfect_a history_n of_o thing_n past_a he_o speak_v with_o that_o assurance_n and_o confidence_n as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v that_o hope_n of_o israel_n bear_v into_o the_o world_n and_o whole_o ecstatick_a in_o his_o contemplation_n of_o so_o infinite_a a_o blessing_n bestow_v on_o the_o world_n he_o fix_v such_o title_n upon_o he_o as_o be_v compatible_a with_o no_o mere_a man_n nay_o he_o make_v he_o god_n a_o infinite_a a_o everlasting_a god_n the_o universal_a monarch_n of_o earth_n and_o heaven_n yet_o leave_v he_o dress_v in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n at_o last_o a_o child_n bear_v a_o son_n give_v to_o we_o miserable_a perish_a creature_n but_o isaiah_n reflection_n on_o the_o promise_a saviour_n be_v so_o many_o as_o not_o to_o be_v instance_a in_o more_o particular_o we_o may_v just_a name_n that_o 11.1_o isai_n 11.1_o and_o there_o shall_v come_v forth_o a_o rod_n out_o of_o the_o stem_n of_o jesse_n and_o a_o branch_n shall_v grow_v out_o of_o his_o root_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v rest_v upon_o he_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n the_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n and_o might_n the_o spirit_n of_o knowledge_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o righteousness_n shall_v he_o judge_v the_o poor_a and_o reprove_v with_o equity_n for_o the_o meek_a of_o the_o earth_n and_o he_o shall_v smite_v the_o earth_n with_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o lip_n shall_v he_o slay_v the_o wicked_a and_o more_o to_o that_o purpose_n which_o st._n paul_n in_o his_o discourse_n to_o the_o antiochian_o in_o pisidia_n allude_v to_o and_o that_o again_o 24._o act_n 13.22_o 22_o 24._o the_o voice_n of_o he_o that_o cry_v in_o the_o wilderness_n prepare_v you_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n make_v straight_o in_o the_o desert_n a_o highway_n for_o our_o god_n every_o valley_n shall_v be_v exalt_v and_o every_o mountain_n and_o hill_n shall_v be_v make_v low_a and_o the_o crooked_a shall_v be_v make_v straight_o and_o the_o rough_a place_n plain_a 5._o ●●i_fw-la 40.3.4_o 5._o and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v reveal_v and_o all_o flesh_n shall_v see_v it_o together_o for_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o which_o john_n the_o baptist_n apply_v to_o himself_o and_o his_o master_n 1.23_o joh._n 1.23_o such_o be_v the_o whole_a fifty-third_a chapter_n a_o complete_a though_o compendious_a chronicle_n of_o our_o saviour_n from_o his_o cradle_n to_o his_o tomb_n happy_o read_v by_o the_o aethiopian_a eunuch_n since_o from_o thence_o the_o evangelist_n philip_n take_v occasion_n to_o preach_v to_o he_o jesus_n 35._o act_n 8.34_o 35._o such_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n be_v upon_o i_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n to_o the_o meek_a he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o brokenhearted_a to_o proclaim_v liberty_n to_o the_o captive_n and_o the_o open_n of_o the_o prison_n to_o they_o that_o be_v bind_v 19_o isai_n 61.1_o 2._o luk._n 4.17_o 18_o 19_o to_o proclaim_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o day_n of_o vengeance_n of_o our_o god_n apply_v to_o himself_o by_o our_o saviour_n agreeable_o to_o these_o prediction_n the_o prophet_n jeremy_n foretell_v behold_v the_o day_n come_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o i_o will_v raise_v to_o david_n a_o righteous_a branch_n and_o a_o king_n shall_v reign_v and_o prosper_v 6._o jerem._n 23.5_o 6._o and_o shall_v execute_v judgement_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o his_o day_n judah_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o israel_n shall_v dwell_v safe_o and_o this_o be_v the_o name_n whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n which_o be_v again_o repeat_v by_o he_o jer._n 33.15_o 16._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n ezekiel_n i_o will_v save_v my_o flock_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o a_o prey_n and_o i_o will_v set_v up_o one_o shepherd_n over_o they_o and_o he_o shall_v feed_v they_o even_o my_o servant_n david_n he_o shall_v feed_v they_o and_o he_o shall_v be_v their_o shepherd_n and_o i_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v their_o god_n 24._o ezek_n 34.22_o 23_o 24._o and_o my_o servant_n david_n a_o prince_n among_o they_o i_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o which_o be_v repeat_v and_o enlarge_v ezek._n 37._o 21_o ad_fw-la fin_n daniel_n yet_o more_o plain_o i_o see_v in_o the_o night_n vision_n and_o behold_v one_o like_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n and_o come_v to_o the_o ancient_n of_o day_n and_o they_o bring_v he_o near_o before_o he_o and_o there_o be_v give_v he_o dominion_n and_o glory_n and_o a_o kingdom_n 14._o dan._n 7.13_o 14._o that_o all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n shall_v serve_v he_o his_o dominion_n be_v a_o everlasting_a dominion_n which_o shall_v not_o pass_v away_o 14._o rev._n 14_o 14._o and_o his_o kingdom_n that_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v which_o st._n john_n allude_v to_o not_o to_o mention_v any_o thing_n of_o daniel_n week_n micah_n give_v we_o that_o thou_o bethlehem_n ephratah_n though_o thou_o be_v little_a among_o the_o thousand_o of_o judah_n 5.2_o mica_n 5.2_o yet_o out_o of_o thou_o shall_v he_o come_v forth_o to_o i_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ruler_n in_o israel_n 2.6_o matt._n 2.6_o who_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v from_o of_o old_a from_o everlasting_a which_o those_o priest_n herod_n afterward_o inquire_v of_o can_v remember_v very_o well_o and_o last_o malachi_n as_o plain_a as_o any_o 3.1_o mat._n 3.1_o behold_v i_o will_v send_v my_o messenger_n and_o he_o shall_v prepare_v the_o way_n before_o i_o and_o the_o lord_n who_o you_o seek_v shall_v sudden_o come_v to_o his_o temple_n even_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o covenant_n who_o you_o delight_v in_o behold_v he_o shall_v come_v say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n these_o be_v a_o few_o of_o that_o very_a great_a number_n of_o prophecy_n which_o raise_v the_o expectation_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o saviour_n who_o they_o expect_v as_o a_o mighty_a temporal_a prince_n not_o consider_v that_o the_o thing_n foretell_v of_o he_o be_v beyond_o the_o achievement_n of_o the_o great_a potentate_n in_o the_o world_n for_o to_o be_v the_o great_a messenger_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o be_v between_o god_n and_o his_o people_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o god_n who_o they_o seek_v and_o who_o their_o temple_n be_v who_o yet_o be_v teach_v to_o worship_v only_o the_o true_a god_n to_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o a_o private_a town_n as_o of_o bethlehem_n yet_o of_o a_o eternal_a original_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o time_n past_a
and_o the_o world_n everlasting_a head_n and_o governor_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o time_n to_o come_v to_o be_v a_o david_n a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n who_o shall_v do_v all_o his_o will_n after_o david_n natural_a death_n to_o be_v infinite_o happy_a just_a compassionate_a anoint_v by_o the_o sacred_a spirit_n of_o god_n to_o have_v the_o great_a of_o those_o bear_v of_o a_o woman_n his_o harbinger_n and_o by_o he_o acknowledge_v for_o a_o god_n though_o shade_v from_o vulgar_a eye_n by_o a_o cloud_n of_o humane_a frailty_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n yet_o a_o child_n a_o son_n bring_v forth_o in_o the_o world_n and_o give_v to_o we_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o pure_a and_o spotless_a virgin_n so_o man_n yet_o the_o hope_n of_o all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o those_o that_o remain_v in_o the_o broad_a sea_n and_o so_o god_n to_o be_v despise_v by_o the_o great_a and_o wise_a yet_o the_o great_a centre_n of_o unity_n for_o all_o the_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v at_o once_o david_n son_n and_o david_n lord_n and_o seat_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n to_o terminate_v all_o material_a typical_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o own_o flesh_n and_o unlimited_a obedience_n yet_o to_o be_v own_a by_o god_n himself_o as_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o heir_n to_o the_o government_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o surpass_v their_o admire_a moses_n as_o a_o master_n his_o servant_n in_o the_o prophetic_a gift_n and_o a_o intimate_a familiarity_n with_o god_n to_o be_v the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o idolatry_n that_o seed_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o blessing_n and_o therefore_o the_o desire_n of_o all_o nation_n that_o seed_n which_o shall_v break_v the_o head_n ruin_v the_o policy_n and_o tyranny_n of_o that_o old_a serpent_n the_o devil_n to_o be_v a_o real_a and_o visible_a man_n yet_o our_o immanuel_n god_n with_o we_o which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o those_o prophecy_n and_o promise_n to_o be_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o consistent_a with_o a_o temporal_a monarch_n who_o breath_n be_v in_o his_o nostril_n though_o all_o the_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n adore_v he_o the_o absolute_a conquest_n over_o prevail_a wickedness_n the_o triumph_n over_o death_n and_o hell_n and_o all_o the_o obstacle_n of_o a_o bless_a immortality_n the_o redemption_n of_o a_o guilty_a world_n from_o impendent_a vengeance_n by_o a_o swift_a and_o entire_a obedience_n to_o the_o almighty_a will_n the_o make_v up_o that_o prodigious_a chasm_n between_o a_o infinite_o pure_a and_o holy_a deity_n and_o a_o deprave_a and_o provoke_a world_n be_v thought_n and_o enterprise_n too_o vast_a and_o glorious_a to_o be_v undertake_v by_o any_o child_n of_o man_n therefore_o whosoever_o it_o be_v that_o all_o those_o mighty_a thing_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v in_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v so_o infinite_o belove_v by_o heaven_n and_o so_o prodigious_a a_o benefactor_n to_o mankind_n must_v be_v according_a to_o those_o title_n fix_v upon_o he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o son_n in_o a_o true_a literal_a sense_n and_o as_o such_o he_o may_v real_o be_v capable_a of_o do_v more_o for_o we_o than_o we_o ourselves_o can_v ask_v or_o think_v the_o bless_a jesus_n as_o i_o intimate_v before_o be_v not_o only_o the_o expectation_n of_o israel_n but_o the_o desire_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o therefore_o promise_v to_o all_o nation_n in_o the_o forecited_a passage_n as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o though_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o so_o good_a nature_a as_o to_o be_v very_o communicative_a of_o their_o divine_a treasure_n yet_o the_o gentile_n who_o have_v their_o concern_v in_o so_o just_a a_o hope_n have_v their_o prediction_n too_o and_o though_o not_o so_o clear_o foresee_v the_o approach_a day_n of_o their_o redeemer_n the_o elder_a prophecy_n such_o as_o that_o to_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o paradise_n or_o that_o to_o abraham_n may_v get_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n the_o prophecy_n themselves_o be_v original_o know_v to_o other_o as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o they_o more_o immediate_o concern_v and_o that_o passage_n of_o job_n i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v 26.27_o job_n 19.25_o 26.27_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v stand_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o though_o after_o my_o skin_n worm_n destroy_v this_o body_n yet_o in_o my_o flesh_n shall_v i_o see_v god_n who_o i_o shall_v see_v for_o myself_o and_o my_o eye_n shall_v behold_v and_o not_o another_o though_o my_o reins_o be_v consume_v within_o i_o be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n that_o those_o who_o live_v without_o the_o pale_a of_o jacob_n family_n be_v sensible_a of_o what_o they_o want_v and_o that_o their_o hope_n be_v reasonable_a that_o those_o want_n shall_v be_v supply_v and_o balaam_n prediction_n be_v hear_v by_o moabite_n stranger_n to_o israel_n be_v without_o all_o question_n take_v great_a notice_n of_o by_o the_o heathen_a nation_n hence_o arise_v the_o fame_n of_o the_o sibylline_a oracle_n talk_v of_o so_o much_o by_o ancient_a writer_n and_o by_o what_o we_o find_v speak_v of_o they_o by_o tully_n 2._o de_fw-fr divinat_fw-la l._n 2._o and_o transcribe_v from_o they_o by_o virgil_n sufficient_a to_o raise_v man_n expectation_n and_o desire_n for_o some_o very_a great_a and_o happy_a event_n hence_o grow_v those_o common_a discourse_n of_o the_o god_n descend_v in_o humane_a shape_n to_o converse_v with_o and_o instruct_v man_n which_o show_v man_n general_a apprehension_n of_o the_o love_n of_o the_o deity_n to_o mankind_n of_o the_o possibility_n of_o a_o incarnation_n and_o the_o useful_a consequence_n it_o may_v have_v for_o the_o reformation_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n hence_o that_o prophetic_a advice_n of_o confutius_n the_o famous_a chinese_n philosopher_n who_o live_v 550._o year_n before_o our_o saviour_n birth_n t●●_n prince_n to_o be_v virtuous_a 32._o huetii_n demonstr_n evang._n prop._n 7._o c._n 32._o for_o say_v he_o the_o action_n of_o a_o good_a prince_n ought_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o he_o shall_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o when_o that_o expect_v holy_a one_o shall_v come_v his_o virtue_n shall_v then_o be_v as_o much_o honour_v as_o it_o be_v before_o while_o he_o live_v and_o reign_v and_o i_o can_v but_o think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o conclude_v that_o balaam_n prophecy_n may_v be_v know_v there_o and_o better_o preserve_v by_o their_o learning_n so_o ancient_a among_o they_o than_o in_o other_o place_n and_o that_o excite_a by_o that_o the_o wise_a man_n come_v from_o thence_o to_o worship_v our_o saviour_n at_o his_o birth_n especial_o since_o the_o length_n of_o a_o journey_n from_o thence_o seem_v most_o agreeable_a to_o herod_n calculation_n when_o to_o be_v sure_a of_o reach_v the_o new_a bear_v king_n he_o kill_v all_o the_o child_n in_o bethlehem_n and_o its_o coast_n 10._o matth._n 2.1_o 2_o 9_o 10._o from_o two_o year_n old_a and_o under_o according_a to_o the_o time_n that_o he_o have_v diligent_o inquire_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n about_o our_o saviour_n time_n and_o before_o and_o after_o for_o a_o while_n a_o rumour_n be_v spread_v abroad_o every_o where_o that_o one_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o judea_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o universal_a monarch_n as_o suetonius_n in_o the_o life_n of_o augustus_n and_o in_o that_o of_o vespasian_n and_o tacitus_n in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o his_o history_n tell_v we_o which_o fame_n josephus_n the_o jewish_a historian_n lay_v hold_v on_o to_o flatter_v with_o vespasian_n and_o to_o get_v his_o own_o liberty_n by_o persuade_v he_o the_o prophetic_a rumour_n point_v he_o out_o for_o the_o roman_a empire_n here_o again_o that_o everliving_a redeemer_n that_o glorious_a child_n who_o shall_v reduce_v the_o frame_n of_o nature_n to_o so_o happy_a a_o condition_n after_o all_o the_o disorder_n it_o have_v suffer_v who_o shall_v banish_v sin_n and_o wickedness_n that_o look_v for_o holy_a one_o who_o shall_v give_v virtue_n its_o due_a reward_n that_o jewish_a native_a who_o shall_v command_v the_o humble_a world_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v conclude_v somewhat_o more_o than_o man_n by_o the_o long_a expectant_n he_o must_v be_v god_n to_o effect_v such_o wonder_n and_o yet_o must_v be_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o native_a of_o judaea_n he_o must_v have_v humane_a nature_n to_o be_v bear_v with_o into_o the_o world_n and_o to_o converse_v with_o man_n and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o very_o small_a footstep_n and_o track_n of_o sin_n he_o must_v at_o least_o be_v partaker_n of_o divinity_n thus_o all_o the_o prophecy_n both_o among_o jew_n and_o gentile_n conclude_v in_o a_o necessity_n that_o the_o world_n redeemer_n from_o that_o misery_n and_o those_o danger_n it_o lay_v under_o must_v at_o least_o be_v the_o
his_o converse_n with_o the_o world_n in_o our_o nature_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n from_o that_o common_a and_o on_o every_o hand_n approve_a practice_n of_o adore_v and_o present_v our_o prayer_n to_o he_o then_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o account_n the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n give_v of_o he_o and_o of_o his_o appearance_n in_o the_o world_n where_o i_o will_v not_o undertake_v a_o exact_a estimate_n of_o every_o thing_n that_o have_v by_o ancient_a writer_n be_v apply_v that_o way_n nor_o every_o thing_n that_o modern_a controversy-writer_n have_v insist_v upon_o but_o upon_o some_o particular_a and_o more_o remarkable_a passage_n only_o among_o which_o the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o three_o angel_n appear_v to_o abraham_n just_a before_o the_o destruction_n of_o sodom_n 18.2_o gen._n 18.2_o where_o i_o shall_v not_o insist_v on_o that_o that_o abraham_n run_v to_o meet_v they_o at_o their_o approach_n and_o bow_v himself_o towards_o the_o ground_n because_o i_o look_v upon_o that_o and_o the_o consequent_a word_n as_o only_a expression_n of_o kindness_n and_o hospitality_n suitable_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o age_n and_o country_n and_o to_o that_o respect_n a_o person_n of_o abraham_n goodness_n and_o sagacity_n will_v express_v to_o stranger_n of_o a_o promise_a mien_n and_o venerable_a aspect_n but_o after_o this_o 22._o v._o 22._o we_o find_v the_o angel_n go_v for_o sodom_n but_o abraham_n stand_v still_o before_o the_o lord_n two_o only_o go_v forward_o so_o let_v in_o sodom_n meet_v with_o and_o entertain_v but_o two_o the_o three_o continue_v still_o with_o abraham_n with_o infinite_a condescension_n declare_v to_o he_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o extraordinary_a appearance_n upon_o earth_n this_o favour_n hinder_v not_o the_o design_n but_o the_o other_o two_o pass_v on_o while_n abraham_n have_v the_o liberty_n to_o argue_v the_o case_n with_o he_o who_o be_v particular_o style_v the_o lord_n so_o the_o writer_n so_o abraham_n in_o that_o converse_n frequent_o style_v he_o and_o that_o not_o by_o the_o same_o word_n original_o which_o lot_n make_v use_v of_o to_o the_o two_o angel_n appear_v to_o he_o 19.2_o c._n 19.2_o which_o be_v only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o jew_n account_v a_o name_n applicable_a to_o any_o but_o by_o that_o sacred_a and_o ineffable_a name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o name_n as_o they_o say_v only_o applicable_a to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o here_o we_o find_v abraham_n continual_o speak_v as_o any_o who_o own_v and_o reveres_fw-la the_o eternal_a majesty_n of_o god_n will_v supplicate_v to_o he_o and_o make_v use_n of_o that_o particular_a argument_n in_o his_o request_n shall_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n do_v right_a 18.25_o c._n 18.25_o he_o then_o to_o who_o abraham_n apply_v himself_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n therefore_o not_o create_v angel_n for_o such_o be_v never_o honour_v with_o that_o character_n but_o it_o be_v proper_o attribute_v to_o the_o supreme_a god_n by_o the_o psalmist_n 2._o ps_n 94.1_o 2._o o_o god_n to_o who_o vengeance_n belong_v show_v thyself_o lift_v up_o thyself_o thou_o judge_v of_o the_o earth_n and_o by_o the_o apostle_n 12.23_o heb._n 12.23_o where_o he_o tell_v the_o hebrew_n they_o be_v come_v to_o god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o or_o as_o your_o margin_n read_v it_o to_o a_o judge_n the_o god_n of_o all_o if_o we_o look_v yet_o forward_o into_o this_o story_n when_o lot_n be_v convey_v safe_a from_o the_o destruction_n which_o fall_v upon_o sodom_n 19.24_o gen._n 19.24_o we_o be_v tell_v the_o lord_n rain_v upon_o sodom_n and_o upon_o gomorrha_n brimstone_n and_o fire_n from_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o heaven_n 832._o epiph._n haer._n l._n 3._o p._n 832._o where_o photinus_n from_o who_o some_o denominate_v our_o socinian_n own_v it_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n which_o rain_v from_o the_o lord_n 118._o sandii_n hist_o enud_a l._n 1._o p._n 118._o but_o that_o word_n be_v god_n as_o we_o learn_v from_o the_o evangelist_n john_n 1.1_o by_o this_o we_o gain_v the_o certainty_n that_o our_o saviour_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v a_o be_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n that_o the_o title_n power_n acknowledgement_n belong_v to_o the_o true_a god_n be_v give_v to_o he_o therefore_o that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v the_o history_n of_o jacob_n wrestle_v with_o the_o man_n when_o he_o be_v leave_v alone_o the_o man_n he_o wrestle_v with_o 3.1_o malac._n 3.1_o antiquity_n general_o understand_v to_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n so_o christ_n be_v name_v 12.24_o heb._n 12.24_o and_o this_o interpretation_n be_v no_o way_n disagreeable_a since_o the_o wrestler_n from_o the_o very_o contest_v give_v jacob_n the_o name_n of_o israel_n which_o signify_v a_o prince_n 32.28_o gen._n 32.28_o or_o one_o that_o powerful_o prevail_v with_o god_n the_o person_n wrestle_v with_o jacob_n refuse_v to_o tell_v his_o name_n which_o create_v angel_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o do_v gabriel_n tell_v zacharias_n his_o name_n the_o name_n of_o michael_n be_v often_o mention_v 1.19_o luke_n 1.19_o and_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n of_o tobit_n suppose_v it_o no_o unusual_a thing_n when_o he_o introduce_v tobias_n companion_n calling_z himself_z raphael_n one_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n that_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n i._n e._n be_v in_o a_o more_o glorious_a state_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o heavenly_a host_n again_o jacob_n express_v his_o sense_n of_o his_o antagonist_n in_o the_o name_n he_o give_v to_o that_o place_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o for_z say_v he_o i_o have_v see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n and_o my_o life_n be_v preserve_v and_o last_o jacob_n pray_v to_o he_o for_o a_o blessing_n and_o will_v not_o part_v without_o it_o which_o argue_v his_o acknowledgement_n of_o a_o divine_a power_n in_o he_o and_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n make_v such_o a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o text_n scarce_o disputable_a where_o speak_v of_o jacob_n he_o have_v power_n over_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o and_o prevail_v 5._o hos_fw-la 12.4_o 5._o he_o weep_v and_o make_v supplication_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v to_o own_v he_o the_o true_a god_n he_o find_v he_o in_o bethel_n and_o there_o he_o speak_v with_o we_o even_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n the_o lord_n be_v his_o memorial_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o expression_n so_o great_a and_o so_o high_a as_o never_o any_o create_v be_v pretend_v to_o we_o may_v then_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o 45_o psalm_n a_o psalm_n by_o all_o the_o ancient_a jew_n apply_v to_o the_o messiah_n and_o right_o as_o will_v appear_v that_o messiah_n be_v jesus_n christ_n in_o that_o both_o arian_n of_o old_a and_o socinian_o of_o late_a as_o well_o as_o the_o orthodox_n agree_v his_o very_a name_n carry_v it_o he_o be_v jesus_n the_o saviour_n he_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o anoint_a of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o psalmist_n there_o represent_v he_o at_o first_o as_o a_o man_n though_o fair_a than_o the_o rest_n of_o humane_a race_n 45.2_o ps_n 45.2_o but_o he_o subjoin_v thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o sceptre_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n be_v a_o right_a sceptre_n thou_o love_v righteousness_n and_o hate_v wickedness_n therefore_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n where_o that_o god_n to_o who_o the_o apostrophe_n or_o exclamation_n refer_v be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n with_o that_o god_n who_o be_v say_v to_o anoint_v he_o in_o the_o original_n and_o the_o whole_a text_n be_v authentical_o apply_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o apostle_n 9_o hebr._n 1.8_o 9_o even_o to_o that_o son_n who_o he_o there_o show_v to_o be_v so_o far_o above_o all_o angelic_a being_n that_o when_o his_o father_n bring_v his_o first_o beget_v into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o which_o the_o apostle_n quote_v from_o the_o psalmist_n 97.7_o psal_n 97.7_o not_o literal_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n but_o according_a to_o the_o then_o current_a translation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n which_o though_o vary_a from_o our_o hebrew_n a_o little_a in_o word_n be_v the_o same_o in_o sense_n that_o the_o word_n by_o we_o translate_v god_n signify_v and_o be_v apply_v to_o create_v being_n sometime_o we_o admit_v of_o as_o no_o way_n prejudicial_a to_o truth_n but_o if_o the_o angel_n be_v command_v to_o worship_v he_o and_o that_o angel_n who_o saint_n john_n will_v have_v adore_v forbid_v he_o because_o he_o though_o a_o angel_n 22.9_o rev._n 22.9_o be_v but_o a_o
moses_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n link_v together_o as_o if_o there_o be_v a_o equality_n among_o they_o we_o be_v tell_v indeed_o by_o wolzogenius_n that_o that_o passage_n after_o the_o israelite_n have_v go_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n be_v a_o parallel_n 14.31_o exod._n 14.31_o have_v see_v that_o great_a work_n which_o god_n have_v do_v upon_o the_o egyptian_n have_v drown_v they_o while_o themselves_o be_v safe_a we_o be_v tell_v the_o people_n fear_v the_o lord_n and_o believe_v the_o lord_n or_o in_o the_o lord_n as_o your_o margin_n read_v it_o and_o in_o his_o servant_n moses_n but_o that_o be_v indeed_o no_o parallel_n for_o there_o be_v distinction_n enough_o make_v between_o god_n and_o moses_n one_o be_v the_o lord_n the_o other_o but_o the_o servant_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o distinction_n in_o the_o text_n no_o servant_n no_o intimation_n of_o a_o inferiority_n but_o only_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n follow_v and_o the_o father_n put_v before_o the_o son_n and_o both_o before_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o proceed_v from_o both_o then_o whereas_o enjedine_n tell_v we_o that_o to_o be_v baptize_v into_o moses_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o moses_n be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o consequent_o that_o to_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o such_o thing_n of_o he_o he_o forget_v that_o to_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o declare_v our_o belief_n of_o his_o be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n yet_o that_o belief_n be_v the_o very_a character_n by_o which_o those_o heretic_n distinguish_v themselves_o from_o we_o who_o they_o call_v trinitarian_n and_o if_o that_o be_v own_a our_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n must_v infer_v our_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o divinity_n since_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o expression_n and_o we_o be_v baptize_v alike_o and_o as_o much_o into_o the_o name_n and_o belief_n of_o one_o as_o of_o the_o other_o but_o they_o will_v prove_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o here_o make_v equal_a with_o his_o father_n because_o s._n paul_n afterward_o rank_n he_o but_o with_o himself_o and_o other_o as_o in_o his_o reproof_n of_o the_o corinthian_n for_o say_v 1.12_o 1_o cor._n 1.12_o i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o of_o christ_n here_o indeed_o they_o confess_v there_o be_v a_o real_a superiority_n in_o christ_n to_o any_o of_o these_o mention_v with_o he_o that_o acknowledgement_n be_v inevitable_a but_o far_a though_o the_o apostle_n condemn_v the_o corinthian_n for_o call_v themselves_o by_o his_o name_n or_o the_o name_n of_o any_o of_o his_o fellow_n labourer_n yet_o he_o approve_v their_o calling_n themselves_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o he_o tell_v they_o with_o respect_n to_o creature_n and_o their_o circumstance_n 23._o 2_o cor._n 3.22_o 23._o all_o be_v they_o whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n or_o cephas_n or_o the_o world_n or_o life_n or_o death_n or_o thing_n present_a or_o thing_n to_o come_v all_o be_v you_o but_o then_o he_o change_v his_o stile_n and_o you_o be_v christ_n and_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o so_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n the_o anoint_v send_v by_o god_n into_o the_o world_n in_o conclusion_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o word_n be_v never_o design_v as_o a_o formulary_a of_o baptism_n which_o they_o prove_v because_o there_o be_v no_o account_n in_o scripture_n particular_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o any_o baptize_v by_o this_o form_n but_o will_v they_o assert_v there_o be_v no_o form_n at_o all_o no_o significant_a word_n make_v use_v of_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o that_o ordinance_n that_o will_v be_v to_o leave_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o outward_a ceremony_n uncertain_a and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o sacramental_a nature_n of_o baptism_n if_o there_o be_v any_o word_n use_v either_o they_o must_v allow_v these_o or_o assign_v some_o other_o which_o none_o that_o i_o know_v of_o have_v attempt_v it_o be_v true_a they_o say_v the_o eunuch_n only_o declare_v to_o philip_n before_o his_o baptism_n 8.37_o act_n 8.37_o that_o he_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o more_o philip_n question_v not_o his_o belief_n of_o a_o god_n he_o be_v a_o jewish_a proselyte_n and_o if_o he_o own_v the_o sonship_n of_o christ_n he_o will_v by_o consequence_n believe_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v reveal_v to_o the_o world_n by_o he_o but_o we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o word_n use_v by_o philip_n in_o the_o act_n of_o baptise_v he_o they_o say_v this_o silence_n prove_v the_o word_n in_o the_o text_n we_o be_v treat_v of_o be_v not_o use_v i_o say_v no_o but_o christ_n particular_a institution_n be_v very_o well_o know_v and_o his_o disciple_n use_v to_o obey_v his_o command_n s._n luke_n silence_n infer_v that_o philip_n use_v those_o very_a word_n so_o institute_v otherwise_o the_o evangelist_n will_v have_v take_v notice_n of_o some_o other_o and_o thus_o after_o all_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o christian_a baptism_n without_o any_o mark_n of_o inferiority_n these_o word_n prove_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v god_n equal_a with_o his_o father_n the_o next_o place_n we_o shall_v insist_v upon_o be_v that_o remarkable_a beginning_n of_o s._n john_n gospel_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n 3._o john_n 1.1_o 2_o 3._o and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v where_o we_o have_v these_o two_o great_a man_n erasmus_n and_o grotius_n agree_v with_o we_o that_o they_o be_v a_o unanswerable_a argument_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o yet_o be_v apt_a enough_o to_o betray_v that_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o weaken_v other_o considerable_a evidence_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o person_n here_o mean_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n the_o socinian_o themselves_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v find_v except_v the_o annotator_n on_o the_o racovian_a catechism_n acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o tell_v all_o their_o discourse_n for_o the_o elude_a the_o force_n of_o this_o text_n will_v be_v a_o work_n too_o tedious_a only_o this_o we_o may_v observe_v they_o tell_v we_o that_o whereas_o moses_n begin_v his_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n with_o a_o like_a expression_n to_o this_o of_o our_o evangelist_n its_o rational_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o evangelist_n here_o be_v only_o go_v to_o describe_v a_o second_o or_o a_o better_a creation_n or_o rather_o the_o renovation_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o jesus_n christ_n which_o have_v be_v ruin_v by_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n which_o renovation_n of_o thing_n begin_v at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n incarnation_n and_o therefore_o the_o evangelist_n mean_v no_o more_o by_o that_o phrase_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n but_o that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v a_o be_v when_o the_o almighty_a god_n first_o set_v upon_o this_o work_n of_o re-creation_n or_o renovation_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o indeed_o the_o design_n of_o the_o evangelist_n be_v only_o to_o obviate_v a_o objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n who_o stand_v fair_a to_o have_v be_v take_v for_o the_o messiah_n because_o he_o first_o enter_v upon_o his_o office_n and_o preach_v repentance_n and_o baptise_a which_o be_v true_o evangelical_n work_v whereas_o christ_n himself_o lie_v hide_v and_o whole_o undiscovered_a to_o the_o world_n but_o to_o my_o best_a apprehension_n there_o be_v very_o little_a need_n of_o all_o this_o care_n for_o though_o some_o such_o thought_n may_v have_v enter_v into_o man_n head_n when_o they_o be_v all_o full_a of_o expectation_n of_o a_o messiah_n that_o john_n who_o holy_a and_o severe_a life_n and_o who_o very_a useful_a doctrine_n be_v general_o know_v may_v be_v that_o messiah_n as_o we_o see_v by_o that_o message_n which_o the_o jew_n send_v to_o he_o from_o jerusalem_n be_v thou_o the_o christ_n or_o elias_n or_o that_o prophet_n or_o who_o be_v thou_o though_o man_n may_v entertain_v some_o such_o thought_n the_o evangelist_n represent_v john_n the_o baptist_n as_o very_o careful_a to_o prevent_v any_o such_o dangerous_a mistake_n therefore_o he_o not_o only_o answer_v negative_o to_o their_o particular_a inquiry_n viz._n that_o he_o be_v not_o
the_o almighty_a that_o he_o have_v have_v a_o be_v from_o eternity_n that_o he_o be_v god_n that_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o make_v but_o what_o be_v make_v by_o he_o that_o he_o have_v make_v the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o in_o heaven_n or_o in_o the_o earth_n that_o he_o have_v found_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n if_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o character_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n our_o saviour_n just_o wear_v they_o all_o he_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n before_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v then_o with_o god_n he_o be_v god_n all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o nothing_o without_o he_o he_o make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o whether_o visible_a or_o invisible_a etc._n etc._n therefore_o he_o be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n notwithstanding_o which_o exalt_a nature_n he_o be_v please_v to_o manifest_v himself_o in_o the_o flesh_n or_o to_o become_v flesh_n which_o can_v be_v no_o diminution_n of_o his_o eternal_a glory_n infinity_n be_v absolute_o incapable_a of_o any_o such_o lessen_v the_o godhead_n be_v not_o convert_v into_o flesh_n as_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n express_v it_o i._n e._n by_o take_v our_o nature_n the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v god_n but_o he_o take_v the_o manhood_n into_o god_n that_o which_o be_v limit_v and_o finite_a into_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a thus_o have_v i_o very_o large_o insist_v on_o this_o begin_n of_o s._n john_n gospel_n it_o be_v such_o a_o discourse_n as_o assert_n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o great_a clearness_n and_o the_o most_o of_o circumstance_n of_o all_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o socinian_o level_v all_o their_o skill_n and_o strength_n against_o it_o know_v very_o well_o that_o a_o conquest_n here_o gain_v will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n to_o make_v they_o victorious_a in_o every_o quarter_n in_o the_o next_o place_n our_o saviour_n discourse_v with_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v always_o seek_v occasion_n to_o quarrel_v both_o his_o word_n and_o action_n when_o we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o that_o if_o he_o have_v but_o the_o discretion_n of_o a_o ordinary_o prudent_a man_n he_o will_v have_v speak_v with_o the_o great_a caution_n in_o the_o world_n 10.30_o joh._n 10.30_o he_o than_o tell_v they_o without_o any_o limitation_n or_o allay_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o locum_fw-la schlicktin_n in_o locum_fw-la hoc_fw-la christi_fw-la dictum_fw-la ad_fw-la essentiam_fw-la trahere_fw-la nugari_fw-la est_fw-la ses_fw-fr schlicktingius_n roundly_o it_o be_v perfect_a fool_n to_o infer_v a_o essential_a unity_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n from_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n mirum_fw-la est_fw-la hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la urgeri_fw-la à_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la locum_fw-la enjed._n in_o locum_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la eo_fw-la velle_fw-la eandem_fw-la patris_fw-la &_o filii_fw-la essentiam_fw-la colligere_fw-la say_v enjedine_n it_o be_v strange_a that_o some_o shall_v urge_v this_o place_n and_o conclude_v from_o it_o that_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o of_o god_n the_o son_n be_v the_o same_o and_o he_o allege_v beza_n and_o calvin_n and_o bucer_n as_o all_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v no_o proof_n in_o the_o case_n but_o it_o be_v not_o what_o man_n of_o great_a name_n say_v or_o bold_o assert_v but_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o say_v so_o or_o so_o that_o we_o much_o respect_v and_o therefore_o we_o can_v overpass_v this_o particular_a text._n the_o jew_n as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o verse_n before_o come_v about_o our_o saviour_n and_o require_v he_o will_v tell_v they_o plain_o whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o not_o the_o question_n in_o itself_o be_v reasonable_a and_o may_v merit_v a_o direct_a answer_n and_o doubtless_o will_v have_v have_v it_o have_v it_o be_v propound_v with_o that_o ingenuity_n and_o sincerity_n which_o become_v those_o who_o be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n but_o our_o saviour_n who_o know_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o question_n refer_v they_o to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o and_o the_o wonderful_a work_n which_o he_o have_v do_v among_o they_o they_o know_v what_o the_o prophet_n have_v foretell_v shall_v be_v do_v by_o the_o messiah_n they_o see_v what_o he_o do_v and_o they_o hear_v in_o who_o name_n he_o pretend_v to_o do_v what_o he_o do_v it_o be_v easy_a for_o they_o to_o compare_v his_o present_a action_n with_o the_o ancient_a prophecy_n and_o to_o find_v out_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n prejudicial_a to_o god_n glory_n or_o man_n happiness_n in_o all_o those_o miracle_n he_o have_v do_v among_o they_o but_o they_o not_o be_v his_o sheep_n nor_o submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o conduct_n who_o be_v the_o good_a shepherd_n they_o have_v not_o honesty_n or_o prudence_n enough_o to_o examine_v and_o weigh_v thing_n impartial_o and_o therefore_o stumble_v at_o noon_n day_n they_o can_v not_o see_v how_o the_o innocence_n of_o his_o life_n where_o they_o can_v convince_v he_o of_o no_o sin_n how_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o doctrine_n which_o he_o utter_v so_o as_o never_o man_n do_v before_o he_o how_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o miracle_n which_o be_v unquestionable_a and_o extreme_o kind_a do_v prove_v beyond_o contradiction_n of_o any_o but_o those_o who_o be_v wilful_o mad_a that_o he_o can_v be_v no_o impostor_n no_o cheat_n as_o they_o imagine_v have_v they_o be_v his_o sheep_n they_o will_v have_v listen_v to_o he_o and_o have_v be_v safe_a for_o all_o those_o be_v so_o who_o follow_v he_o he_o will_v give_v they_o eternal_a life_n and_o no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n for_o his_o father_n who_o give_v they_o he_o be_v great_a than_o all_o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o therefore_o none_o can_v pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n therefore_o he_o too_o be_v great_a than_o all_o this_o will_v seem_v to_o the_o natural_a consequence_n of_o the_o word_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o jew_n think_v it_o be_v so_o for_o they_o present_o take_v up_o stone_n to_o stone_n he_o i._n e._n to_o give_v he_o that_o death_n which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a punishment_n of_o the_o blasphemer_n and_o such_o they_o take_v he_o for_o for_o when_o christ_n reproach_v their_o baseness_n 33._o v._o 33._o and_o ask_v for_o which_o of_o his_o good_a work_n they_o stone_v he_o they_o ready_o answer_v they_o stone_v he_o not_o for_o a_o good_a work_n but_o for_o blasphemy_n because_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n make_v himself_o god_n this_o they_o think_v they_o conclude_v very_o reasonable_o because_o he_o have_v say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_o one_o well_o do_v our_o saviour_n in_o his_o reply_n tell_v they_o they_o be_v mistake_v that_o he_o mean_v no_o such_o thing_n by_o those_o word_n that_o his_o meaning_n only_o be_v that_o he_o and_o his_o father_n be_v both_o of_o one_o mind_n exact_o agree_v in_o that_o kind_a intention_n of_o preserve_v his_o sheep_n from_o perish_v do_v he_o make_v any_o such_o plea_n not_o at_o all_o but_o he_o sharp_o reprove_v their_o folly_n in_o challenge_v he_o as_o a_o blasphemer_n for_o those_o word_n and_o take_v up_o a_o argument_n against_o they_o from_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o psalmist_n i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n 36._o v._o 34_o 35_o 36._o if_o he_o call_v they_o god_n to_o who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v say_v our_o lord_n and_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v break_v say_v you_o of_o hi●_n who_o the_o father_n have_v sanctify_v and_o send_v into_o the_o world_n thou_o blaspheme_v because_o i_o sai●_n i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n i._n e._n if_o earthly_a prince_n deserve_v the_o name_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v god_n vicegerent_n or_o if_o angel_n carry_v that_o name_n because_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god●_n glory_n will_v not_o that_o title_n much_o more_o just_o belong_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n make_v flesh_n sanctify_v from_o the_o womb_n of_o his_o mother_n and_o send_v from_o heaven_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n he_o must_v then_o by_o the_o very_a force_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v great_a than_o either_o the_o great_a of_o man_n or_o the_o holy_a of_o angel_n but_o what_o middle_a be_v be_v or_o can_v there_o be_v between_o angelic_a substance_n and_o the_o deity_n that_o shall_v be_v above_o angel_n and_o yet_o not_o god_n we_o will_v allow_v then_o that_o for_o two_o to_o be_v one_o be_v often_o use_v for_o that_o unity_n or_o agreement_n of_o mind_n which_o our_o adversary_n speak_v of_o but_o we_o
after_o he_o earnest_o ask_v that_o question_n wherefore_o then_o be_v not_o we_o all_o wise_a embrace_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o god_n be_v jesus_n christ_n and_o present_o after_o ask_v the_o apostle_n question_n where_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n where_o be_v the_o disputer_n where_o be_v the_o glory_v of_o those_o who_o be_v repute_v man_n of_o understanding_n he_o subjoin_v for_o our_o god_n jesus_n the_o christ_n be_v conceive_v of_o mary_n according_a to_o divine_a order_n of_o the_o seed_n or_o line_n of_o david_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o dare_v now_o appeal_v to_o all_o mankind_n whether_o they_o will_v not_o conclude_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v speak_v of_o any_o be_v whatsoever_o at_o this_o rate_n will_v not_o be_v think_v to_o account_v the_o person_n he_o speak_v of_o in_o such_o broad_a term_n real_a god_n and_o whether_o a_o good_a rational_a deist_n will_v not_o conclude_v that_o if_o he_o so_o speak_v of_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a creature_n he_o who_o shall_v so_o speak_v of_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o pass_v at_o least_o for_o a_o borderer_n upon_o idolatry_n for_o it_o be_v rational_o expect_v that_o in_o such_o weighty_a matter_n man_n word_n shall_v be_v the_o proper_a interpretation_n of_o their_o thought_n and_o not_o pester_v with_o dubious_a or_o uncertain_a or_o unintelligible_a phrase_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o call_v our_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n appear_v humane_o or_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o man_n do_v clothe_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o endue_v with_o a_o rational_a soul_n which_o be_v but_o another_o way_n of_o express_v the_o text_n god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n will_v you_o then_o have_v his_o pre-existence_n as_o god_n before_o he_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n our_o ignatius_n assert_n that_o too_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o magnesian_o 34._o ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la p._n 33_o 34._o viz._n that_o he_o be_v with_o his_o father_n before_o all_o time_n and_o in_o the_o end_n or_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n at_o last_o he_o appear_v and_o afterward_o there_o be_v one_o god_n who_o manifest_v himself_o by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o eternal_a word_n agreeable_o to_o s._n john_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o gospel_n again_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o trallian_n and_o twice_o in_o the_o inscription_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n he_o gives_z the_o title_n of_o god_n to_o our_o saviour_n nay_o of_o our_o god_n and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o that_o epistle_n he_o beg_v of_o the_o roman_n that_o they_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o hinder_v his_o martyrdom_n then_o at_o hand_n no_o permit_v i_o say_v he_o earnest_o to_o be_v a_o imitator_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n my_o god_n and_o again_o 60._o ad_fw-la romanos_fw-la p._n 60._o he_o call_v he_o my_o god_n twice_o over_o in_o the_o subsequent_a two_o or_o three_o line_n the_o prophet_n frequent_o reflect_v upon_o it_o as_o idolatry_n to_o say_v to_o a_o image_n thou_o be_v my_o god_n and_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o convince_v by_o any_o socinian_n argument_n that_o it_o be_v not_o idolatry_n to_o say_v the_o same_o to_o any_o create_v be_v whatsoever_o at_o best_a the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o those_o eminent_a apostolical_a man_n if_o our_o lord_n be_v no_o more_o by_o nature_n than_o a_o mere_a man_n must_v needs_o be_v condemn_v of_o extreme_a imprudence_n and_o uncharitableness_n who_o when_o they_o may_v as_o well_o have_v express_v their_o mind_n otherwise_o will_v yet_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o word_n as_o be_v ●nly_o apt_a to_o deceive_v and_o impose_v upon_o man_n ●o_o give_v they_o false_a notion_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n and_o either_o make_v they_o idolater_n at_o ●●st_n or_o at_o least_o very_a near_o borderer_n upon_o it_o word_n that_o be_v figurative_a may_v be_v easy_o misunderstand_v by_o very_o good_a man_n in_o ordinary_a case_n as_o we_o see_v his_o companion_n conclude_v s._n john_n shall_v never_o die_v only_o from_o our_o saviour_n word_n to_o s._n peter_n if_o i_o will_v that_o he_o tarry_v till_o i_o come_v what_o be_v that_o to_o thou_o how_o much_o more_o dangerous_a than_o must_v such_o word_n be_v especial_o when_o continual_o use_v in_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a weight_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o give_v more_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n from_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n if_o we_o will_v meddle_v with_o those_o spurious_a or_o interpolated_a but_o we_o need_v no_o such_o precarious_a assistance_n the_o next_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o order_n of_o time_n be_v justine_n common_o style_v the_o martyr_n because_o he_o die_v such_o for_o his_o obedience_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n he_o live_v about_o one_o hundred_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o shall_v not_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n out_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o exposition_n of_o faith_n print_v as_o he_o among_o his_o work_n though_o it_o will_v afford_v we_o a_o great_a deal_n because_o the_o credit_n of_o it_o be_v doubtful_a and_o learned_a man_n think_v they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v our_o justine_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o it_o i_o shall_v therefore_o only_o examine_v what_o be_v of_o unquestionable_a authority_n in_o he_o in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n present_v to_o the_o roman_a senate_n d._n apolog._n 1._o p._n 44._o l._n d._n among_o other_o thing_n he_o tell_v they_o the_o name_n of_o father_n and_o god_n and_o creator_n and_o lord_n and_o master_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a name_n of_o god_n but_o name_n derive_v from_o his_o work_n and_o those_o favour_n he_o have_v extend_v towards_o man_n but_o his_o son_n who_o alone_o be_v proper_o call_v his_o son_n the_o word_n who_o be_v with_o he_o and_o beget_v of_o he_o before_o all_o creature_n because_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v and_o adorn_v all_o thing_n by_o he_o be_v call_v christ_n he_o be_v anoint_v and_o god_n beautify_v every_o thing_n by_o he_o here_o than_o we_o have_v what_o the_o evangelist_n have_v teach_v we_o before_o literal_o understand_v and_o confirm_v that_o the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n and_o that_o by_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v the_o holy_a martyr_n think_v of_o no_o figure_n or_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o discourse_n the_o same_o martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n present_v to_o antoninus_n pius_n the_o roman_a emperor_n in_o assert_v the_o justice_n and_o reason_n of_o that_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o he_o and_o his_o christian_a brethren_n profess_v lay_v down_o a_o clear_a proof_n of_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o their_o service_n to_o he_o in_o give_v a_o account_n of_o that_o burn_a bush_n which_o moses_n see_v and_o out_o of_o which_o he_o hear_v a_o voice_n for_o at_o that_o time_n when_o moses_n as_o he_o be_v feed_v his_o father-in-law_n sheep_n be_v order_v to_o go_v into_o egypt_n and_o to_o bring_v out_o from_o thence_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d our_o christ_n speak_v to_o he_o out_o of_o the_o bush_n under_o the_o resemblance_n of_o fire_n and_o bid_v he_o loose_v his_o shoe_n off_o his_o foot_n and_o attend_v he_o and_o receive_v abundance_n of_o strength_n and_o courage_n from_o that_o christ_n with_o who_o he_o discourse_v he_o go_v down_o and_o glorious_a and_o terrible_a with_o a_o thousand_o miracle_n lead_v that_o people_n from_o their_o bondage_n b._n apolog._n 2._o p._n ●5_n l._n b._n the_o jew_n themselves_o confess_v say_v he_o that_o it_o be_v that_o god_n who_o name_n be_v unknown_a or_o unutterable_a who_o then_o discourse_v with_o moses_n but_o the_o martyr_n himself_o say_v it_o be_v our_o christ_n therefore_o if_o the_o martyr_n opinion_n be_v true_a our_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n jehovah_n the_o most_o high_a god_n the_o martyr_n urge_v his_o argument_n yet_o far_o with_o reflection_n upon_o the_o jewish_a incredulity_n that_o angel_n which_o speak_v to_o moses_n out_o of_o the_o burn_a bush_n say_v to_o he_o i_o be_o that_o god_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n go_v down_o therefore_o into_o egypt_n and_o lead_v forth_o my_o people_n a_o socinian_n himself_o will_v own_v that_o that_o name_n be_v never_o due_a to_o any_o but_o to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n though_o they_o fly_v to_o figure_n there_o too_o we_o urge_v this_o say_v the_o father_n only_o that_o we_o may_v prove_v that_o that_o jesus_n christ_n in_o
who_o we_o believe_v be_v the_o son_n and_o messenger_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o word_n before_o have_v sometime_o appear_v in_o the_o resemblance_n of_o fire_n sometime_o in_o the_o form_n of_o angel_n now_o at_o last_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v make_v man_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o mankind_n and_o for_o their_o sake_n suffer_v whatsoever_o jewish_a cruelty_n and_o malice_n can_v inflict_v upon_o he_o who_o while_o they_o own_a it_o be_v god_n the_o creator_n and_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o speak_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n and_o yet_o he_o that_o there_o speak_v be_v the_o son_n the_o angel_n the_o messenger_n of_o god_n indeed_o they_o lay_v themselves_o open_a to_o that_o just_a reproof_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o they_o neither_o know_v the_o father_n nor_o the_o son_n we_o argue_v too_o from_o hence_o that_o if_o it_o be_v our_o christ_n who_o appear_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n as_o justine_n affirm_v and_o scripture_n sufficient_o evidence_n if_o it_o be_v our_o christ_n what_o name_n soever_o he_o may_v be_v call_v by_o he_o then_o be_v pre-existent_a or_o have_v a_o real_a be_v before_o he_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n therefore_o he_o can_v be_v no_o mere_a man_n unless_o the_o socinian_o can_v find_v out_o the_o way_n to_o satisfy_v the_o question_n of_o nicodemus_n by_o assert_v positive_o that_o a_o man_n a_o mere_a man_n may_v be_v bear_v when_o he_o be_v old_a that_o he_o may_v literal_o enter_v again_o into_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o be_v bear_v anew_o and_o can_v prove_v it_o when_o they_o have_v assert_v it_o he_o can_v be_v no_o angel_n that_o be_v deny_v in_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o 2.16_o heb._n 2.16_o he_o take_v not_o upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n a_o speech_n very_o idle_a if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o angel_n original_o if_o therefore_o he_o neither_o be_v a_o mere_a man_n nor_o a_o create_a angel_n he_o be_v and_o must_v be_v the_o supreme_a god_n again_o the_o same_o justine_n in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o trypho_n the_o jew_n c._n dial._n cum_fw-la tryph._n jud._n p._n 267._o l._n b._n c._n when_o trypho_n urge_v he_o with_o his_o absurd_a assertion_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n before_o all_o age_n and_o yet_o have_v condescend_v to_o become_v man_n justine_n answer_v he_o the_o truth_n will_v not_o therefore_o be_v lose_v if_o he_o shall_v fail_v in_o his_o proof_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o world_n creator_n and_o that_o he_o be_v god_n because_o however_o it_o have_v be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o but_o if_o i_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v a_o be_v before_o and_o then_o condescend_v to_o become_v man_n and_o take_v flesh_n according_a to_o his_o father_n design_n and_o determination_n dcinceps_fw-la p._n 275._o &_o dcinceps_fw-la it_o be_v only_o proper_a to_o conclude_v that_o i_o be_o a_o weak_a disputant_n not_o that_o he_o who_o bear_v that_o character_n be_v not_o the_o christ_n when_o trypho_n afterward_o bid_v he_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v or_o can_v be_v another_o god_n beside_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o universe_n the_o martyr_n stumble_v not_o at_o the_o proposition_n but_o proceed_v to_o prove_v the_o thing_n by_o that_o instance_n of_o the_o lord_n before_o who_o abraham_n stand_v when_o the_o two_o angel_n go_v forward_o towards_o sodom_n and_o fall_v again_o upon_o the_o forementioned_a instance_n of_o christ_n speak_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n by_o both_o which_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o son_n be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n be_v god_n and_o yet_o he_o assert_v not_o two_o god_n but_o one_o god_n because_o if_o two_o or_o three_o being_n be_v partaker_n of_o one_o divine_a nature_n they_o must_v of_o consequence_n be_v one_o god_n the_o divine_a nature_n be_v indivisible_a and_o incapable_a of_o degree_n or_o diminution_n after_o a_o large_a discourse_n with_o the_o jew_n he_o tell_v he_o that_o in_o the_o several_a argument_n he_o have_v bring_v he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v lord_n and_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o have_v appear_v both_o as_o a_o man_n d._n p._n 357._o d._n and_o as_o a_o angel_n in_o the_o burn_a bush_n and_o at_o the_o destruction_n of_o sodom_n and_o trypho_n all_o along_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o engage_v in_o that_o design_n of_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n not_o by_o a_o figure_n but_o in_o reality_n he_o conclude_v the_o scripture_n be_v very_o express_v in_o their_o evidence_n that_o that_o christ_n who_o have_v suffer_v so_o much_o at_o the_o jew_n hand_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o be_v god_n have_v he_o not_o prove_v the_o last_o well_o that_o he_o be_v god_n to_o have_v assert_v the_o first_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v will_v have_v sound_v very_o harsh_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o jew_n but_o even_o trypho_n himself_o who_o think_v it_o prodigious_a and_o incredible_a that_o god_n shall_v be_v bear_v and_o shall_v condescend_v to_o become_v man_n though_o none_o of_o the_o most_o tractable_a person_n in_o the_o world_n be_v bring_v to_o agrippa_n condition_n by_o the_o zealous_a martyr_n and_o almost_o persuade_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n about_o the_o same_o time_n live_v s._n irenaeus_n bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o france_n one_o who_o have_v be_v a_o hearer_n of_o bless_a polycarp_n who_o have_v be_v himself_o a_o hearer_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o have_v certain_o the_o advantage_n of_o know_v what_o be_v sound_a and_o true_a doctrine_n with_o relation_n to_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o from_o very_o authentic_a hand_n his_o writing_n be_v original_o greek_a as_o himself_o be_v by_o birth_n though_o employ_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o part_n of_o france_n but_o those_o original_n be_v almost_o all_o lose_v and_o we_o must_v necessary_o content_v ourselves_o with_o their_o translation_n this_o excellent_a father_n than_o tell_v we_o first_o what_o the_o general_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o the_o church_n believe_v in_o one_o god_n 2._o iren._n adv_o haer._n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o the_o father_n almighty_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o one_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnate_a for_o our_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o among_o other_o thing_n have_v teach_v we_o that_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o invisible_a father_n every_o knee_n of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o of_o thing_n on_o earth_n and_o of_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n shall_v bow_v to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n our_o god_n our_o saviour_n and_o our_o king_n and_o that_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v to_o he_o and_o this_o passage_n we_o have_v in_o the_o genuine_a original_n and_o it_o seem_v satisfactory_a enough_o as_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o french_a church_n in_o those_o day_n and_o doubtless_o be_v look_v upon_o by_o he_o as_o the_o faith_n general_o embrace_v by_o all_o the_o true_a professor_n of_o christianity_n 3._o c._n 3._o and_o indeed_o so_o he_o assure_v we_o in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n that_o the_o church_n spread_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n diligent_o maintain_v this_o faith_n and_o observe_v it_o as_o exact_o as_o if_o they_o all_o inhabit_v in_o one_o house_n they_o believe_v it_o as_o if_o they_o have_v all_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n and_o with_o a_o wonderful_a consent_n preach_v it_o as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o mouth_n we_o then_o be_v safe_a enough_o while_o we_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v god_n since_o holy_a martyr_n nay_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n believe_v the_o same_o truth_n so_o long_o since_o and_o make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o their_o public_a creed_n declare_v their_o judgement_n that_o so_o to_o believe_v be_v necessary_a to_o eternal_a salvation_n have_v afterward_o tell_v we_o what_o the_o apostle_n have_v preach_v and_o how_o they_o have_v prove_v he_o true_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o falsehood_n in_o he_o he_o proceed_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n thus_o therefore_o neither_o our_o lord_n himself_o nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v call_v any_o one_o god_n absolute_o and_o definitive_o unless_o he_o have_v real_o be_v true_a god_n nor_o will_v they_o have_v call_v any_o one_o lord_n in_o his_o own_o person_n 6._o l._n 3._o c._n 6._o but_o only_o he_o who_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o thing_n god_n the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n and_o so_o he_o proceed_v to_o enumerate_v several_a text_n wherein_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o lord_n be_v indifferent_o give_v to_o both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o teach_v we_o 18._o c._n 18._o
that_o our_o lord_n be_v call_v immanuel_n by_o the_o prophet_n as_o cite_v by_o s._n matthew_n or_o god_n with_o we_o that_o we_o may_v not_o think_v he_o be_v man_n only_o but_o that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o be_v god_n too_o if_o then_o christ_n be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n his_o divine_a nature_n be_v mention_v in_o contradistinction_n to_o his_o humane_a nature_n irenaeus_n can_v mean_v that_o he_o who_o be_v real_o a_o man_n be_v only_o metaphorical_o god_n but_o that_o he_o be_v as_o real_o and_o essential_o god_n as_o he_o be_v man_n which_o be_v what_o we_o believe_v with_o irenaeus_n agree_v clemens_n of_o alexandria_n who_o thus_o teach_v the_o gentile_n in_o his_o admonition_n to_o they_o we_o be_v the_o rational_a creature_n of_o god_n the_o word_n so_o he_o call_v our_o saviour_n after_o the_o evangelist_n s_o john_n d._n admon_n ad_fw-la gent._n p._n 5._o l._n d._n by_o who_o we_o pretend_v to_o antiquity_n because_o god_n the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o beginning_n but_o because_o the_o word_n be_v from_o above_o he_o be_v and_o be_v the_o divine_a original_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o since_o he_o have_v now_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n a_o name_n suitable_a to_o his_o power_n and_o which_o be_v sanctify_v of_o old_a i_o call_v he_o a_o new_a song_n this_o refer_v to_o his_o former_a allegorical_a discourse_n wherein_o he_o endeavour_v to_o describe_v every_o thing_n under_o term_n proper_a to_o harmony_n or_o music_n this_o word_n then_o this_o christ_n who_o be_v at_o first_o in_o god_n be_v both_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o original_a existence_n and_o of_o our_o well-being_n but_o now_o this_o word_n himself_o have_v make_v himself_o manifest_a to_o man_n who_o alone_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o our_o good_a by_o who_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o live_v well_o be_v send_v from_o hence_o to_o eternal_a life_n for_o according_a to_o that_o inspire_a apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v appear_v to_o all_o man_n teach_v they_o that_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n we_o shall_v live_v godly_a righteous_o and_o sober_o in_o this_o present_a world_n look_v for_o the_o glorious_a come_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o new_a song_n that_o manifestation_n of_o god_n the_o word_n who_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o before_o all_o thing_n and_o now_o shine_v bright_o out_o to_o we_o he_o appear_v but_o late_o who_o be_v our_o saviour_n before_o he_o who_o be_v appear_v in_o he_o who_o be_v because_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o that_o word_n by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v make_v his_o appearance_n as_o a_o master_n that_o word_n which_o as_o a_o creator_n give_v we_o life_n in_o our_o first_o formation_n appear_v now_o as_o a_o master_n or_o teacher_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o live_v well_o that_o hereafter_o as_o god_n he_o may_v bestow_v upon_o we_o eternal_a life_n thus_o far_o that_o very_o learned_a father_n and_o his_o whole_a discourse_n do_v so_o plain_o teach_v we_o the_o pre-existence_n of_o our_o saviour_n before_o his_o conception_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o consequent_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o his_o eternal_a be_v with_o the_o father_n that_o the_o most_o ignorant_a person_n in_o the_o world_n may_v plain_o understand_v what_o the_o faith_n of_o this_o writer_n be_v thus_o afterward_o speak_v of_o john_n baptist_n the_o forerunner_n of_o our_o saviour_n he_o tell_v they_o john_n teach_v man_n to_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o presence_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o god_n the_o christ_n afterward_o speak_v of_o that_o care_n our_o saviour_n take_v to_o have_v the_o gospel_n preach_v he_o add_v the_o lord_n do_v not_o effect_v so_o great_a work_n in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n without_o a_o sacred_a care_n he_o be_v despise_v in_o appearance_n but_o adore_v indeed_o be_v a_o purifyer_n a_o saviour_n and_o extreme_o kind_a the_o divine_a word_n be_v real_o most_o manifest_a god_n and_o put_v into_o a_o equal_a rank_n with_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v his_o son_n and_o the_o word_n be_v in_o god_n d._n ibid._n p._n 68_o l._n d._n he_o be_v neither_o disbelieved_a when_o he_o be_v first_o preach_v nor_o be_v he_o unknown_a or_o unacknowledged_a when_o assume_v the_o presence_n of_o a_o man_n and_o be_v make_v flesh_n he_o manage_v the_o save_a design_n of_o his_o assume_v humanity_n again_o speak_v to_o those_o who_o be_v blind_a with_o sin_n and_o folly_n under_o the_o person_n of_o tiresias_n that_o blind_a theban_a vizard_n and_o invite_v such_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n he_o speak_v thus_o if_o thou_o will_v thou_o too_o shall_v be_v initiate_v into_o these_o mystery_n and_o join_v in_o the_o choir_n of_o bless_a angel_n about_o the_o unbegotten_a the_o never_o to_o be_v destroy_v the_o only_a true_a god_n god_n the_o word_n assist_v in_o the_o same_o hymn_n with_o we_o he_o be_v eternal_a the_o only_a jesus_n or_o saviour_n the_o great_a highpriest_n of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o father_n d._n p._n 70._o l_o d._n he_o intercede_v for_o man_n and_o he_o persuade_v they_o to_o goodness_n i_o shall_v instance_n but_o in_o one_o passage_n more_o in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o have_v cite_v that_o of_o the_o psalmist_n who_o shall_v ascend_v into_o the_o hill_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o who_o shall_v stand_v in_o his_o holy_a place_n etc._n etc._n at_o large_a he_o thus_o descant_v upon_o it_o the_o prophet_n say_v he_o in_o my_o opinion_n here_o brief_o describe_v the_o true_a gnostick_n or_o the_o man_n of_o true_a knowledge_n to_o we_o and_o by_o the_o bye_n david_n show_v we_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v god_n for_o he_o call_v he_o the_o face_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n who_o bring_v we_o glad_a tiding_n and_o teach_v we_o of_o or_o concern_v the_o spirit_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o son_n the_o character_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n him_n who_o teach_v the_o truth_n concern_v god_n and_o who_o represent_v to_o we_o that_o god_n and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o only_o and_o almighty_a who_o none_o can_v know_v but_o the_o son_n c._n stromat_n l._n 7._o p._n 733._o c._n and_z he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n shall_v reveal_v he_o that_o god_n be_v but_o one_o appear_v by_o those_o who_o seek_v the_o face_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n who_o our_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n characterise_n as_o the_o only_a god_n and_o father_n of_o good_n here_o than_o we_o have_v the_o father_n true_a and_o real_a god_n the_o son_n true_a and_o real_a god_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o god_n and_o this_o be_v that_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v to_o clemens_n i_o shall_v only_o add_v his_o scholar_n origen_n for_o the_o greek_a church_n a_o man_n of_o extraordinary_a eminence_n in_o his_o time_n who_o in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o celsus_n that_o great_a adversary_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n reflect_v upon_o the_o vanity_n of_o heathen_a god_n and_o their_o incapacity_n to_o help_v those_o that_o depend_v on_o they_o he_o tell_v celsus_n that_o upon_o this_o very_a reason_n because_o there_o be_v no_o help_n in_o false_a god_n it_o be_v a_o sure_a rule_n among_o christian_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v trust_v in_o any_o be_v as_o god_n except_o only_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o a_o little_a after_o whereas_o celsus_n object_n against_o we_o so_o often_o that_o we_o believe_v jesus_n consist_v of_o a_o mortal_a body_n to_o be_v god_n and_o imagine_v ourselves_o very_o pious_a in_o so_o think_v he_o answer_v let_v those_o who_o accuse_v we_o know_v that_o he_o who_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v god_n of_o old_a and_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v of_o himself_o the_o word_n the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o even_o that_o mortal_a body_n and_o reasonable_a soul_n which_o he_o assume_v by_o its_o communication_n and_o unity_n and_o mixture_n with_o the_o word_n or_o with_o his_o divine_a nature_n arise_v to_o so_o great_a a_o height_n as_o to_o be_v god_n i.e._n his_o humane_a and_o his_o divine_a nature_n make_v by_o a_o substantial_a or_o essential_a union_n one_o god_n and_o that_o i_o give_v no_o false_a interpretation_n to_o his_o word_n here_o will_v appear_v by_o what_o i_o shall_v allege_v afterward_o it_o be_v all_o along_o the_o humour_n of_o celsus_n then_o when_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o jew_n and_o when_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o person_n to_o reproach_v the_o christian_n with_o the_o irrationality_n of_o their_o religion_n on_o that_o particular_a account_n that_o they_o own_v christ_n as_o
trinity_n where_o among_o other_o thing_n quote_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n hosea_n i_o will_v not_o save_v they_o by_o my_o bow_n nor_o by_o horse_n 1.7_o hos_fw-la 1.7_o nor_o by_o horseman_n but_o i_o will_v save_v they_o by_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n he_o infer_v from_o thence_o if_o god_n promise_v they_o salvation_n in_o their_o god_n or_o by_o he_o and_o yet_o save_v they_o only_o by_o christ_n why_o shall_v any_o man_n be_v afraid_a to_o call_v christ_n god_n since_o he_o be_v call_v so_o by_o his_o father_n in_o scripture_n nay_o if_o the_o father_n save_v none_o but_o by_o god_n no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v by_o god_n the_o father_n who_o do_v not_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n in_o and_o by_o who_o god_n promise_v to_o give_v salvation_n whosoever_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v god_n shall_v obtain_v salvation_n in_o christ_n 236._o de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la fol._n 236._o who_o be_v god_n whosoever_o acknowledge_v he_o not_o to_o be_v god_n shall_v not_o be_v save_v by_o he_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o conclusion_n he_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o who_o in_o those_o day_n argue_v at_o the_o socinian_n rate_n that_o if_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o christ_n suffer_v death_n than_o the_o deity_n suffer_v death_n to_o which_o he_o answer_v apposite_o enough_o that_o if_o christ_n have_v be_v only_a god_n and_o have_v dye_v their_o conclusion_n have_v be_v true_a but_o christ_n be_v man_n as_o well_o as_o god_n his_o humanity_n suffer_v indeed_o but_o his_o divine_a nature_n be_v unprejudiced_a untouched_a thus_o have_v we_o large_o and_o impartial_o examine_v this_o father_n about_o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o his_o assertion_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o direct_v and_o the_o heresy_n he_o impeach_v in_o his_o writing_n of_o such_o a_o nature_n that_o they_o both_o concur_v exact_o in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v true_o and_o real_o god_n equal_a with_o his_o father_n and_o the_o most_o high_a god_n we_o have_v another_o glorious_a luminary_n of_o the_o same_o church_n s._n cyprian_n that_o holy_a martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o laborious_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o as_o he_o be_v a_o great_a admirer_n of_o the_o writing_n of_o tertullian_n so_o concur_v with_o he_o in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n s._n cyprian_n then_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o vanity_n of_o idol_n have_v settle_v that_o fundamental_a truth_n that_o there_o be_v only_o one_o god_n present_o show_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v god_n too_o this_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v have_v he_o judge_v the_o inference_n good_a that_o to_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n be_v to_o make_v two_o god_n he_o will_v not_o so_o soon_o contradict_v himself_o nor_o go_v about_o to_o set_v up_o a_o new_a idol_n when_o he_o be_v endeavour_v to_o exterminate_v the_o old_a thus_o than_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o whereas_o the_o jew_n a_o stubborn_a and_o rebellious_a people_n have_v long_o abuse_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n god_n be_v resolve_v to_o call_v to_o himself_o from_o among_o the_o gentile_n a_o people_n that_o shall_v show_v forth_o better_a effect_n of_o his_o mercy_n than_o they_o do_v the_o manager_n of_o this_o goodness_n 15._o cyprian_a de_fw-fr idolor_n vanit_fw-la edit_fw-la ox._n p._n 15._o grace_n and_o method_n be_v he_o who_o be_v the_o word_n and_o son_n of_o god_n who_o have_v be_v foretell_v by_o all_o the_o prophet_n the_o enlightner_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o mankind_n this_o son_n be_v the_o power_n the_o fullness_n the_o wisdom_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n he_o enter_v into_o the_o virgin_n assume_v flesh_n by_o the_o co-operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n god_n unite_v with_o man_n he_o be_v our_o god_n he_o be_v christ_n who_o put_v on_o the_o nature_n of_o those_o man_n who_o he_o lead_v to_o his_o father_n christ_n will_v be_v what_o man_n be_v that_o man_n may_v be_v what_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o testimony_n against_o the_o jew_n 35._o p._n 34_o 35._o he_o spend_v one_o whole_a chapter_n in_o heap_v up_o such_o scripture_n text_n as_o before_o socinian_n commentary_n be_v think_v on_o be_v judge_v sufficient_a proof_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n in_o particular_a he_o insist_o on_o those_o passage_n of_o the_o 45_o psalm_n which_o be_v apply_v to_o our_o saviour_n so_o direct_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n 5.7_o 1_o joh._n 5.7_o that_o famous_a place_n there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o have_v be_v much_o controvert_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o very_a plain_a text_n for_o the_o trinity_n and_o consubstantiality_n or_o equality_n or_o sameness_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o critic_n observe_v that_o this_o verse_n be_v want_v in_o several_a copy_n of_o considerable_a antiquity_n and_o dr._n burnet_n in_o his_o account_n of_o the_o library_n in_o switzerland_n lett._n see_v his_o lett._n take_v notice_n of_o its_o be_v want_v in_o several_a manuscript_n he_o have_v purposely_o examine_v yet_o after_o all_o our_o s._n cyprian_n much_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o elder_a manuscript_n he_o or_o any_o other_o critical_a writer_n have_v yet_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o in_o his_o book_n of_o church-unity_n quote_v it_o as_o we_o read_v it_o i●_n our_o bibles_n socinus_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v th●_n passage_n be_v insert_v into_o the_o bible_n by_o som●_n zealous_a trinitarian_n who_o make_v use_v of_o an●_n fraud_n to_o advance_v their_o own_o error_n s._n hi●rome_n who_o have_v find_v it_o want_v in_o som●_n copy_n in_o his_o time_n which_o be_v about_o 400_o year_n after_o christ_n impute_v the_o want_n of_o it_o more_o rational_o to_o arrian_n transcriber_n who_o find_v themselves_o pinch_v with_o so_o plain_a a_o text_n when_o they_o can_v not_o answer_v it_o resolve_v to_o take_v it_o quite_o away_o this_o he_o signify_v in_o a_o short_a epistle_n to_o eustochium_fw-la print_v former_o frequent_o in_o the_o latin_a bibles_n of_o late_o omit_v as_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o learned_a dr._n fall_v late_a bishop_n of_o oxford_n in_o his_o note_n on_o s._n cyprian_n s._n cyprian_n by_o quote_v the_o verse_n as_o we_o have_v it_o confirm_v s._n jerome_n opinion_n and_o render_v that_o of_o socinus_n ridiculous_a for_o he_o quote_v it_o before_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n be_v found_v and_o that_o twice_o in_o his_o work_n therefore_o can_v he_o have_v no_o such_o design_n as_o socinus_n insinuate_v yet_o s._n cyprian_n opinion_n be_v that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v this_o unity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n 100l_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n p._n 100l_n as_o lay_v down_o in_o that_o text_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o law_n of_o god_n nor_o hold_v the_o faith_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n to_o his_o salvation_n the_o ●ame_n s_o cyprian_n recommend_v patience_n to_o christian_n and_o that_o in_o a_o time_n when_o the_o ●aging_a persecution_n make_v it_o extreme_o necessary_a he_o advance_v it_o by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n for_o say_v he_o jesus_n christ_n deus_n &_o dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la our_o god_n and_o our_o lord_n ●as_v teach_v we_o this_o virtue_n not_o only_o in_o his_o word_n 213._o de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi patientiae_fw-la p._n 213._o ●ut_v in_o his_o action_n which_o he_o clear_v as_o tertullian_n before_o he_o by_o his_o descent_n from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n assume_v our_o nature_n and_o differ_v in_o it_o again_o in_o his_o account_n of_o ●he_n council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v about_o those_o ●ho_n have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n among_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o bishop_n there_o present_a fortunatus_n bishop_n of_o thuchabore_v declare_v jesus_n christus_fw-la dominus_fw-la &_o deus_fw-la noster_fw-la 17_o p._n 233._o c._n 17_o dei_fw-la patris_fw-la &_o creatoris_fw-la filius_fw-la jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o creator_n have_v found_v his_o church_n not_o upon_o heresy_n 29.235_o c._n 29.235_o but_o upon_o a_o rock_n the_o same_o title_n be_v give_v he_o by_o euchratius_n bishop_n of_o then●_n the_o same_o by_o venantius_n bishop_n of_o tinisa_n a_o confessor_n have_v not_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o common_a sentiment_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n it_o will_v certain_o have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o some_o contest_v and_o other_o will_v have_v observe_v and_o reflect_v on_o the_o incautiousness_n of_o their_o colleague_n but_o we_o meet_v with_o no_o difference_n on_o this_o occasion_n therefore_o we_o right_o conclude_v they_o speak_v agreeable_o to_o the_o catholic_n
and_o express_v word_n that_o our_o saviour_n be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o either_o à_fw-la parte_fw-la ante_fw-la with_o respect_n to_o the_o time_n past_a or_o before_o his_o incarnation_n or_o à_fw-la parte_fw-la post_fw-la with_o respect_n to_o the_o time_n to_o come_v or_o after_o his_o incarnation_n but_o only_o a_o mere_a glorify_a man_n or_o they_o must_v agree_v with_o we_o that_o he_o be_v god_n eternal_a equal_a with_o his_o father_n as_o true_a and_o as_o real_a god_n as_o ever_o he_o be_v true_a and_o real_a man_n and_o this_o be_v what_o those_o ancient_a father_n do_v certain_o agree_v with_o and_o in_o all_o those_o passage_n i_o have_v quote_v from_o they_o they_o must_v believe_v so_o or_o be_v absolute_o inconsistent_a with_o themselves_o and_o all_o those_o who_o be_v their_o successor_n soon_o after_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n must_v have_v strange_o mistake_v they_o and_o their_o opinion_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o so_o likely_a as_o it_o be_v that_o modern_a writer_n shall_v misunderstand_v they_o now_o how_o their_o immediate_a successor_n nay_o and_o their_o contemporary_n understand_v they_o will_v appear_v the_o better_a by_o a_o short_a view_n of_o the_o deal_n of_o public_a council_n and_o such_o as_o be_v approve_v by_o they_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o samosatenian_a and_o arrian_n heresy_n in_o which_o its_o observable_a that_o gregory_n bishop_n of_o neo-caesarea_n common_o call_v thaumaturgus_n among_o other_o thing_n give_v we_o a_o confession_n of_o faith_n say_v by_o gregory_n nyssen_n to_o have_v be_v dictate_v to_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n leave_v that_o circumstance_n in_o suspense_n the_o sum_n of_o his_o confession_n amount_v to_o this_o 841._o council_n t._n 2._o p._n 841._o there_o be_v one_o god_n the_o father_n of_o the_o live_a word_n of_o essential_a wisdom_n and_o power_n and_o of_o a_o eternal_a character_n the_o perfect_a begetter_n of_o he_o that_o be_v perfect_a the_o father_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n there_o be_v one_o lord_n god_n of_o god_n god_n alone_o of_o he_o who_o alone_o be_v god_n the_o character_n and_o image_n of_o the_o deity_n the_o word_n work_v in_o we_o comprehend_v the_o contexture_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o power_n which_o make_v the_o universal_a creation_n the_o true_a son_n of_o the_o true_a father_n invisible_z of_o he_o who_o be_v invisible_a incorruptible_a of_o he_o who_o be_v incorruptible_a immortal_a of_o he_o who_o be_v immortal_a and_o eternal_a of_o he_o that_o be_v eternal_a this_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n be_v express_a enough_o to_o our_o purpose_n and_o but_o necessary_a for_o that_o time_n when_o samosatenianisme_n be_v spring_v forth_o and_o make_v way_n for_o more_o heretical_a innovator_n in_o the_o faith_n about_o the_o same_o time_n be_v a_o council_n call_v at_o antioch_n where_o paulus_n of_o samosata_n be_v then_o bishop_n who_o doctrine_n be_v in_o that_o agreeable_a with_o our_o socinian_n that_o he_o hold_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o mere_a man_n 844._o council_n t._n 1._o p._n 844._o that_o he_o have_v no_o be_v before_o his_o conception_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o that_o he_o acquire_v the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o good_a work_n and_o extraordinary_a righteousness_n in_o that_o council_n then_o meet_v at_o antioch_n these_o doctrine_n of_o paulus_n be_v condemn_v and_o anathematise_v this_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 264._o very_a early_a and_o by_o the_o concurrence_n of_o a_o number_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o that_o doctrine_n and_o that_o when_o there_o be_v no_o roman_a emperor_n nor_o other_o great_a secular_a man_n to_o countenance_v they_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o socinian_n doctrine_n as_o now_o it_o be_v samosatenian_a heresy_n as_o then_o it_o be_v be_v not_o then_o approve_v of_o in_o the_o church_n in_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n to_o paulus_n thus_o they_o declare_v no_o man_n have_v know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_z he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n have_v reveal_v he_o ibid._n ibid._n but_o we_o confess_v and_o preach_v that_o this_o son_n be_v beget_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n the_o wisdom_n and_o word_n and_o power_n of_o god_n exist_v before_o all_o age_n not_o in_o his_o father_n foreknowledge_n but_o real_a god_n in_o his_o own_o essence_n the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o declare_v both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n whosoever_o then_o fight_v against_o this_o truth_n and_o declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o to_o have_v be_v god_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o who_o say_v that_o to_o believe_v and_o confess_v or_o to_o preach_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n be_v to_o introduce_v two_o god_n we_o look_v upon_o such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v without_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o catholic_n church_n consent_n with_o we_o in_o this_o opinion_n then_o they_o proceed_v to_o prove_v what_o they_o assert_v by_o several_a text_n of_o scripture_n the_o great_a part_n of_o which_o we_o have_v consider_v before_o about_o the_o same_o time_n dionysius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n answer_v ten_o question_n propound_v to_o he_o by_o paulus_n 857_o ibid._n p._n 857_o wherein_o he_o maintain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eternity_n and_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n certain_o these_o will_v not_o have_v not_o only_o declare_v their_o own_o opinion_n free_o but_o appeal_v to_o universal_a judgement_n if_o they_o have_v think_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o can_v have_v be_v confute_v but_o paulus_n offer_v at_o no_o such_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v hear_v of_o paulus_n condemn_v by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o antioch_n renounce_v his_o heretical_a opinion_n but_o soon_o return_v to_o his_o vomit_n again_o and_o undertake_v their_o vindication_n this_o apostasy_n of_o his_o make_v a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o bishop_n meet_v at_o antioch_n a_o second_o time_n they_o look_v on_o the_o controversy_n as_o of_o so_o great_a importance_n that_o even_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o aurelian_a a_o cruel_a persecute_v emperor_n they_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o meet_v to_o crush_v so_o dangerous_a and_o fundamental_a a_o error_n in_o that_o council_n paulus_n and_o his_o doctrine_n be_v unanimous_o condemn_v again_o there_o malchion_n a_o presbyter_n dispute_v with_o paulus_n tell_v he_o that_o jesus_n christ_n of_o god_n the_o word_n and_o a_o humane_a body_n which_o be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n be_v make_v one_o no_o long_o subsist_v in_o a_o divide_a but_o in_o a_o unite_a state_n in_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n not_o entire_o extant_a they_o complain_v of_o paulus_n as_o deny_v christ_n to_o have_v descend_v down_o from_o heaven_n 22._o council_n t._n 1._o p._n 899._o baluzii_n nova_fw-la colloctio_fw-la council_n p._n 19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o and_o for_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v whole_o from_o earth_n in_o some_o other_o fragment_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n omit_v by_o eusebius_n the_o synod_n speak_v thus_o neither_o god_n who_o be_v clothe_v in_o a_o humane_a body_n be_v in_o that_o body_n free_a from_o humane_a passion_n neither_o be_v his_o humane_a body_n empty_a of_o divine_a power_n that_o power_n which_o be_v in_o that_o body_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o that_o humane_a body_n wrought_v those_o wonderful_a work_n here_o than_o we_o have_v a_o body_n of_o pious_a and_o learned_a man_n represent_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n concur_v in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o those_o opinion_n which_o the_o scholar_n of_o socinus_n have_v late_o revive_v to_o these_o we_o may_v add_v for_o the_o western_a church_n the_o suffrage_n of_o foelix_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o a_o small_a fragment_n of_o a_o epistle_n write_v by_o he_o about_o those_o controversy_n as_o the_o matter_n evince_n to_o the_o clergy_n of_o alexandria_n the_o fragment_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o apologetic_n of_o s._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n against_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n in_o the_o first_o general_n council_n at_o ephesus_n and_o it_o be_v to_o this_o effect_n as_o for_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o our_o faith_n in_o that_o point_n we_o believe_v in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 912._o council_n t._n 1._o p._n 912._o who_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n that_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o word_n and_o not_o a_o man_n assume_v by_o god_n that_o there_o may_v be_v another_o beside_o himself_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o take_v humanity_n upon_o he_o for_o that_o end_n but_o be_v perfect_a god_n he_o also_o become_v perfect_a man_n be_v incarnate_a of_o the_o virgin_n
when_o the_o arrian_n controversy_n be_v on_o foot_n alexander_z bishop_n of_o alexandria_n condemn_v it_o in_o a_o synod_n of_o almost_o a_o hundred_o bishop_n who_o all_o conclude_v the_o doctrine_n of_o arius_n a_o perfect_a innovation_n not_o at_o all_o consistent_a with_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n what_o arius_n assert_v we_o have_v in_o alexander_n circular_a epistle_n viz._n that_o god_n be_v not_o always_o a_o father_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n wherein_o he_o be_v not_o the_o father_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o always_o but_o have_v its_o original_n as_o other_o creature_n out_o of_o nothing_o for_o he_o that_o be_v god_n frame_v or_o make_v he_o who_o have_v no_o be_v out_o of_o what_o have_v no_o be_v therefore_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o he_o be_v not_o etc._n etc._n of_o these_o heterodox_n assertion_n of_o arius_n alexander_n in_o that_o epistle_n give_v we_o a_o confutation_n and_o that_o strong_a and_o pithy_a and_o such_o as_o be_v draw_v from_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n can_v never_o have_v be_v oppose_v have_v not_o there_o live_v in_o elder_a age_n some_z who_o be_v able_a to_o study_v out_o as_o perverse_a gloss_n for_o positive_a text_n as_o the_o socinian_o do_v now_o a-days_o but_o that_o be_v not_o all_o what_o alexander_n insist_o upon_o be_v the_o disagreement_n of_o these_o position_n with_o the_o church_n ancient_a faith_n so_o he_o first_o style_v the_o arian_n heresy_n a_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n and_o proper_o enough_o after_o this_o he_o say_v they_o be_v apostate_n such_o as_o have_v fall_v off_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v no_o way_n consonant_n to_o scripture_n whoever_o hear_v such_o thing_n before_o say_z he_o or_o who_o be_v there_o who_o hear_v they_o now_o val._n socratis_n hist_o eccl._n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o edit_fw-la val._n will_v not_o be_v amaze_v and_o stop_v his_o ear_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v defile_v with_o hear_v such_o abominable_a stuff_n that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o heresy_n before_o but_o this_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o make_v the_o near_a approach_n to_o anti-christianism_a thus_o alexander_n in_o his_o circular_a epistle_n but_o alexander_n must_v have_v be_v equal_o silly_a and_o impudent_a to_o have_v write_v in_o this_o manner_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n when_o his_o business_n be_v to_o satisfy_v they_o of_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o proceed_n against_o arius_n and_o his_o accomplice_n and_o when_o he_o be_v to_o countermine_v the_o stratagem_n and_o interest_n of_o eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n a_o subtle_a and_o powerful_a adversary_n if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o son_n co-eternity_n and_o co-essentiality_a with_o his_o father_n have_v not_o be_v the_o receive_a and_o well_o know_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o whole_a design_n of_o his_o elaborate_a epistle_n have_v be_v blast_v have_v but_o his_o brethren_n the_o bishop_n or_o any_o part_n of_o they_o retort_v upon_o he_o that_o arius_n teach_v no_o new_a doctrine_n but_o what_o have_v be_v hold_v even_o from_o our_o saviour_n time_n and_o general_o teach_v in_o all_o christian_a congregation_n but_o we_o find_v nothing_o of_o this_o kind_n offer_v at_o and_o alexander_n himself_o go_v off_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n at_o last_o with_o the_o reputation_n of_o a_o very_a wise_a and_o a_o very_a good_a man._n eusebius_n of_o nicomedia_n then_o make_v a_o considerable_a party_n for_o his_o client_n arius_n and_o support_v and_o encourage_v he_o to_o resolution_n in_o his_o opinion_n this_o make_v the_o controversy_n grow_v hot_a and_o oblige_v constantine_n the_o great_a who_o desire_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o preserve_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n to_o call_v that_o famous_a general_n council_n at_o the_o city_n of_o nice_a in_o bythinia_n to_o determine_v at_o once_o the_o arian_n and_o the_o paschal_n controversy_n the_o emperor_n himself_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o alexander_n and_o arius_n by_o hosius_n of_o corduba_n seem_v to_o be_v very_o indifferent_a in_o the_o controversy_n his_o indifference_n be_v enough_o to_o give_v life_n and_o vigour_n to_o the_o eusebian_n or_o arian_n party_n yet_o all_o will_v not_o do_v for_z notwithstanding_o the_o emperor_n indifferency_n and_o eusebius_n his_o industry_n and_o activity_n upon_o fair_o debate_v the_o matter_n of_o 318._o father_n which_o make_v up_o that_o assembly_n there_o be_v only_o five_o who_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v the_o condemnation_n of_o arius_n eusebius_n of_o caesarea_n the_o church_n historian_n seem_v to_o hesitate_n a_o little_a at_o first_o but_z after_o mature_a deliberation_n subscribe_v and_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o subscription_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o to_o his_o own_o diocese_n of_o caesarea_n wherein_o he_o give_v they_o a_o copy_n of_o that_o creed_n himself_o have_v draw_v up_o wherein_o he_o declare_v he_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n creator_n of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o in_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o word_n of_o god_n god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n life_n of_o life_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n the_o first-born_a of_o every_o creature_n beget_v of_o god_n the_o father_n before_o all_o age_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v who_o for_o our_o salvation_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o converse_v among_o man_n thus_o eusebius_n 8._o socratis_n l._n 1._o c._n 8._o this_o he_o declare_v to_o have_v be_v always_o his_o faith_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v safe_o subscribe_v to_o that_o form_n propose_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o and_o so_o he_o do_v and_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o willing_o subscribe_v those_o anathema_n propound_v against_o arius_n because_o they_o particular_o forbid_v the_o use_n of_o such_o word_n with_o which_o scripture_n be_v unacquainted_a of_o which_o several_a which_o he_o there_o instance_n in_o be_v in_o the_o arian_n formulary_a or_o confession_n the_o nicene_n council_n itself_o in_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n declare_v the_o opinion_n and_o expression_n of_o arius_n so_o uncouth_a and_o blasphemous_a 9_o c._n 9_o that_o the_o council_n can_v scarce_o have_v patience_n to_o hear_v they_o that_o he_o have_v yet_o unhappy_o seduce_v two_o bishop_n with_o his_o impious_a heresy_n who_o they_o therefore_o have_v excommunicate_v with_o arius_n himself_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n on_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n tell_v they_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la that_o arius_n and_o his_o companion_n have_v blasphemous_o contradict_v scripture_n and_o our_o holy_a faith_n that_o when_o three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o bishop_n have_v settle_v the_o faith_n according_a to_o god_n word_n only_a arius_n seduce_v by_o the_o devil_n refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o it_o he_o advise_v they_o to_o embrace_v that_o faith_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v deliver_v that_o all_o shall_v return_v to_o their_o dear_a brethren_n from_o who_o that_o instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n have_v separate_v they_o and_o thus_o the_o whole_a controversy_n come_v at_o last_o to_o rest_v in_o the_o determination_n of_o entire_a council_n these_o particular_a person_n alexander_n eusebius_n and_o constantine_n have_v call_v the_o arrian_n opinion_n apostasy_n a_o seduction_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n a_o subserviency_n to_o the_o devil_n disagreeable_a to_o god_n word_n etc._n etc._n the_o council_n give_v their_o positive_a determination_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n suitable_o oppose_v to_o those_o encroachment_n man_n in_o those_o day_n make_v upon_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n thus_o the_o second_o council_n at_o antioch_n before_o mention_v give_v we_o this_o confession_n of_o faith_n with_o respect_n to_o our_o saviour_n we_o confess_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n beget_v of_o his_o father_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n before_o the_o world_n bear_v in_o the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o virgin_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n one_o person_n of_o the_o heavenly_a divinity_n and_o of_o humane_a flesh_n unite_v whole_a god_n even_o with_o his_o body_n but_o not_o god_n according_a to_o his_o body_n whole_a man_n even_o with_o his_o divinity_n but_o not_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n whole_o adorable_a even_o with_o his_o body_n but_o not_o adorable_a according_a to_o his_o body_n entire_o adore_v god_n himself_o even_o with_o his_o divinity_n but_o not_o adore_v he_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n whole_o uncreated_a even_o with_o his_o body_n but_o not_o uncreated_a according_a to_o the_o body_n whole_o create_v even_o with_o his_o divinity_n but_o not_o create_v according_a to_o his_o divinity_n whole_o consubstantial_a with_o god_n even_o with_o his_o body_n but_o not_o consubstantial_a with_o god_n in_o his_o body_n and_o whole_o consubstantial_a with_o man_n even_o with_o his_o divinity_n but_o
not_o consubstantial_a with_o man_n in_o his_o divinity_n etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v observable_a those_o father_n use_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d consubstantial_a 50._o year_n and_o more_o before_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o eusebius_n of_o caesarea_n in_o his_o before-cited_n epistle_n to_o his_o diocese_n own_v it_o be_v a_o expression_n use_v by_o some_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o forhesii_n inst_z theol_n hist_o l._n 1._o c._n 4._o by_o some_o ancient_a bishop_n and_o writer_n a_o thing_n either_o not_o observe_v or_o strange_o forget_v by_o some_o modern_a author_n this_o confession_n of_o the_o antiochian_a council_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n afterward_o and_o so_o make_v they_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a give_v we_o this_o creed_n we_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n maker_n of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o in_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n beget_v of_o his_o father_n and_o the_o only_o beget_v i._n e._n of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o father_n god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v both_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o those_o that_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n who_o for_o we_o man_n and_o for_o our_o salvation_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o become_v man._n after_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o second_o general_n council_n reduce_v that_o of_o nice_a to_o that_o form_n which_o we_o now_o make_v use_n of_o in_o the_o communion_n service_n a_o confession_n of_o faith_n so_o full_a and_o so_o plain_a that_o so_o long_o as_o that_o be_v retain_v and_o faithful_o believe_v the_o socinian_n heresy_n can_v never_o get_v any_o considerable_a advantage_n against_o we_o the_o consideration_n of_o which_o have_v occasion_v some_o late_a struggle_n of_o a_o heretical_a party_n to_o get_v that_o creed_n as_o well_o that_o call_v the_o athanasian_n expunge_v out_o of_o our_o liturgy_n to_o this_o agree_v their_o council-book_n send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o italian_a bishop_n assemble_v together_o at_o rome_n and_o to_o the_o same_o agree_v before_o they_o athanasius_n that_o great_a standard_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n against_o the_o arian_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o exposition_n of_o the_o faith_n extant_a among_o his_o other_o work_n and_o to_o the_o same_o we_o may_v join_v that_o excellent_a confession_n of_o faith_n appoint_v to_o be_v use_v on_o particular_a day_n in_o our_o liturgy_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n sound_n and_o orthodox_n but_o not_o of_o so_o great_a antiquity_n and_o thus_o have_v we_o show_v at_o large_a what_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v with_o respect_n to_o our_o saviour_n divinity_n long_o before_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o the_o mighty_a name_n of_o the_o universal_a bishop_n or_o can_v carry_v on_o any_o ambitious_a design_n by_o alter_v the_o faith_n every_o where_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n this_o primitive_a faith_n be_v what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o with_o her_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n hold_v as_o i_o show_v before_o and_o which_o even_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o dare_v not_o attack_v nor_o shall_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n ever_o prevail_v against_o it_o amen_n and_o thus_o have_v we_o do_v with_o our_o four_o evidence_n of_o the_o real_a divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n viz._n the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n we_o proceed_v to_o the_o five_o and_o last_o which_o we_o propound_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o we_o shall_v now_o prove_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_a and_o perfect_a god_n from_o that_o common_a and_o every_o way_n approve_a practice_n of_o adore_v and_o present_v our_o prayer_n to_o he_o this_o adore_v and_o pray_v to_o christ_n be_v a_o duty_n so_o proper_o incumbent_a on_o all_o person_n who_o hope_v for_o salvation_n through_o his_o name_n that_o the_o socinian_o themselves_o in_o the_o racovian_a catechism_n in_o answer_n to_o that_o question_n quid_fw-la sentis_fw-la de_fw-la iis_fw-la hominibus_fw-la qui_fw-la christum_fw-la nec_fw-la invocandum_fw-la nec_fw-la adorandum_fw-la censent_fw-la 92._o catech._n racou._n l._n 6._o c._n 1._o p_o 92._o what_o think_v you_o of_o those_o man_n who_o conclude_v that_o christ_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v call_v upon_o nor_o worship_v they_o thus_o reply_v since_o those_o be_v certain_o christian_n who_o acknowledge_v jesus_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o that_o heavenly_a king_n of_o a_o holy_a people_n and_o therefore_o worship_v he_o in_o a_o divine_a manner_n and_o scruple_n not_o to_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n on_o which_o account_n we_o former_o describe_v christian_n as_o such_o who_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o understand_v that_o those_o who_o will_v not_o do_v so_o be_v not_o yet_o christian_n though_o they_o may_v otherwise_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o pretend_v to_o adhere_v to_o his_o doctrine_n in_o this_o we_o have_v the_o great_a prophet_n of_o that_o party_n declare_v how_o essential_a pray_v to_o christ_n be_v to_o christianity_n and_o this_o their_o witness_n be_v true_a but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o can_v but_o svere_o reflect_v upon_o their_o impudence_n who_o will_v first_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a man_n and_o then_o will_v persuade_v we_o either_o that_o we_o ought_v or_o may_v call_v upon_o he_o in_o our_o prayer_n or_o worship_v he_o but_o that_o we_o may_v have_v the_o fair_a view_n of_o their_o folly_n and_o madness_n in_o this_o particular_a we_o shall_v lay_v down_o this_o argument_n all_o that_o divine_a worship_n be_v idolatry_n which_o be_v pay_v to_o any_o be_v but_o he_o who_o be_v the_o true_a god_n none_o of_o that_o divine_a worship_n be_v idolatry_n which_o be_v pay_v to_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a god_n where_o by_o divine_a worship_n we_o mean_v that_o worship_n either_o inward_a or_o outward_a which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n be_v ascribe_v and_o appropriate_v to_o the_o supreme_a be_v the_o true_a god_n then_o be_v that_o supreme_a or_o sovereign_a be_v and_o by_o idolatry_n i_o mean_v such_o a_o application_n of_o that_o true_a divine_a worship_n belong_v to_o the_o supreme_a be_v to_o any_o creatute_n or_o create_v be_v as_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o first_o or_o second_o commandment_n in_o the_o decalogue_n from_o whence_o alone_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o idolatry_n or_o regular_a and_o proper_o apply_v divine_a worship_n can_v be_v take_v i_o assert_v then_o that_o all_o that_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v pay_v to_o any_o be_v beside_o the_o true_a god_n be_v plain_a idolatry_n the_o excellency_n of_o nature_n in_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o adoration_n make_v no_o difference_n or_o abatement_n of_o guilt_n in_o the_o case_n he_o be_v as_o much_o a_o idolater_n who_o worship_v a_o wise_a man_n or_o a_o great_a public_a benefactor_n or_o a_o man_n deify_v as_o he_o who_o worship_v a_o stock_n or_o a_o stone_n and_o he_o break_v the_o holy_a commandment_n as_o notorious_o who_o pay_v those_o adoration_n to_o a_o good_a angel_n which_o belong_v to_o almighty_a god_n as_o he_o that_o pay_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o noble_a create_v be_v in_o the_o universe_n be_v no_o more_o able_a to_o answer_v the_o true_a end_n of_o all_o divine_a worship_n than_o the_o most_o contemptible_a creature_n we_o can_v cast_v our_o eye_n on_o and_o god_n express_v as_o great_a a_o jealousy_n of_o his_o own_o honour_n when_o it_o be_v take_v from_o he_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o pure_a of_o his_o creature_n as_o when_o it_o be_v misapply_v in_o a_o grosser_n manner_n when_o god_n command_v israel_n what_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n must_v necessary_o have_v prescribe_v before_o not_o to_o have_v any_o other_o god_n before_o his_o face_n he_o make_v no_o reservation_n of_o any_o right_n of_o appoint_v another_o god_n to_o himself_o but_o exclude_v all_o other_o deity_n be_v they_o make_v or_o subordinate_a or_o coordinate_a or_o under_o what_o character_n soever_o they_o may_v be_v make_v the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n and_o when_o he_o require_v they_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o themselves_o any_o grave_a image_n nor_o the_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n either_o in_o heaven_n above_o or_o in_o earth_n beneath_o or_o in_o the_o water_n under_o the_o earth_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o
our_o god_n and_o to_o serve_v he_o only_o we_o know_v it_o be_v the_o common_a practice_n of_o all_o professor_n of_o christianity_n and_o allow_v by_o our_o adversary_n to_o worship_v our_o saviour_n to_o adore_v and_o pray_v to_o he_o as_o god_n we_o think_v ourselves_o and_o the_o socinian_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o may_v do_v thus_o without_o be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n therefore_o our_o saviour_n must_v be_v the_o supreme_a god_n the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o he_o and_o his_o father_n must_v be_v one_o god_n and_o so_o neither_o the_o first_o nor_o second_o commandment_n at_o all_o trespass_v upon_o in_o those_o adoration_n we_o find_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n or_o any_o false_a god_n condemn_v as_o idolatry_n frequent_o in_o god_n word_n we_o find_v holy_a man_n refuse_v to_o 〈◊〉_d worship_v there_o and_o angel_n them●_n forbid_v any_o sign_n of_o adoration_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o trespass_v upon_o a_o law_n so_o notorious_a both_o in_o scripture_n and_o in_o nature_n and_o this_o we_o have_v speak_v off_o before_o a_o socinian_n will_v own_v that_o our_o saviour_n know_v his_o father_n will_n as_o well_o as_o either_o holy_a man_n or_o angel_n that_o he_o be_v as_o careful_a to_o honour_v his_o father_n in_o perform_v his_o will_n as_o either_o of_o they_o that_o he_o who_o come_v to_o die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n in_o what_o sense_n soever_o will_v never_o tempt_v they_o to_o commit_v sin_n yet_o we_o find_v he_o allow_v that_o worship_n offer_v to_o himself_o express_v by_o outward_a humility_n and_o prostration_n which_o yet_o be_v that_o very_a reverence_n which_o good_a man_n and_o good_a angel_n have_v refuse_v as_o unlawful_a before_o either_o this_o worship_n be_v idolatrous_a or_o it_o be_v not_o if_o it_o be_v our_o saviour_n be_v no_o better_a than_o the_o jew_n think_v of_o he_o viz._n a_o cheat_n and_o a_o impostor_n one_o who_o seek_v their_o ruin_n not_o their_o happiness_n therefore_o to_o be_v sure_a far_o enough_o from_o be_v that_o messiah_n who_o title_n he_o pretend_v to_o if_o it_o be_v not_o idolatry_n than_o the_o worship_v of_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o worship_v more_o god_n than_o one_o though_o he_o be_v worship_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o must_v be_v the_o supreme_a god_n all_o divine_a worship_n pay_v to_o any_o other_o be_v be_v large_o prove_v to_o be_v idolatry_n before_o but_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o man_n of_o extraordinary_a goodness_n and_o wisdom_n will_v ever_o have_v give_v we_o example_n of_o idolatry_n or_o that_o god_n will_v any_o way_n have_v allow_v much_o less_o have_v command_v it_o that_o it_o be_v fit_v to_o be_v do_v the_o racovian_a catechism_n prove_v from_o that_o 23._o joh._n 5.22_o 23._o the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o judgement_n or_o government_n to_o the_o son_n that_o all_o shall_v honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n and_o again_o from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 11._o phil._n 2.9_o 10_o 11._o therefore_o god_n have_v high_o exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o every_o name_n that_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v both_o of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o three_o on_o earth_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v under_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o lord_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o though_o they_o be_v at_o a_o doubt_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o direct_a command_n to_o worship_v he_o in_o scripture_n yet_o when_o we_o read_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 97.7_o heb_fw-mi 1.6_o ps_n 97.7_o when_o he_o bring_v his_o first-born_a into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o or_o as_o our_o more_o immediate_a translation_n from_o the_o present_a hebrew_n text_n read_v it_o worship_v he_o all_o you_o god_n and_o when_o according_a to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o socinus_n himself_o in_o his_o dispute_n with_o franciscus_n davidis_n that_o passage_n 721._o joel_n 2.32_o rom._n 10.13_o ●p_n 721._o whosoever_o shall_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v be_v apply_v just_o to_o our_o saviour_n by_o the_o apostle_n these_o two_o passage_n together_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o command_n strong_a and_o forcible_a enough_o to_o oblige_v every_o one_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n or_o to_o pray_v to_o he_o these_o be_v command_n enjoin_v we_o to_o worship_v our_o saviour_n even_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o if_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o god_n then_o all_o those_o command_n which_o enjoin_v the_o worship_v of_o one_o god_n be_v so_o many_o command_v equal_o oblige_v we_o to_o worship_n jesus_n christ_n but_o suppose_v a_o positive_a precept_n want_v in_o the_o case_n before_o we_o though_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o every_o private_a action_n of_o a_o good_a man_n as_o a_o oblige_a precedent_n to_o we_o yet_o where_o we_o have_v a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n concur_v in_o the_o case_n we_o may_v reasonable_o conclude_v that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v worship_v our_o saviour_n so_o continual_o mere_o to_o lead_v we_o into_o error_n nor_o will_v angel_n have_v agree_v with_o they_o in_o the_o practice_n nor_o will_v our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v pass_v they_o by_o without_o a_o reproof_n yet_o frequent_o as_o we_o find_v adoration_n pay_v to_o our_o saviour_n when_o upon_o earth_n we_o never_o find_v any_o dissatisfaction_n in_o his_o word_n and_o action_n 11.33_o joh._n 11.33_o he_o groan_v for_o the_o stubbornness_n and_o obduracy_n of_o jewish_a heart_n for_o their_o prodigious_a resolution_n not_o to_o own_v he_o though_o draw_v they_o all_o with_o the_o sacred_a cord_n of_o love_n and_o miraculous_a goodness_n he_o weep_v 35._o v._o 35._o to_o observe_v their_o inflexible_a and_o to_o themselves_o fatal_a temper_n he_o weep_v over_o jerusalem_n 19.41_o luk_n 19.41_o on_o the_o dismal_a prospect_n of_o those_o calamity_n that_o wrath_n to_o the_o uttermost_a which_o be_v then_o hasten_v upon_o they_o 12.14_o luk._n 12.14_o he_o reprove_v the_o man_n who_o will_v needs_o have_v make_v he_o a_o temporary_a judge_n or_o a_o divider_n of_o inheritance_n among_o they_o 2d_o luk._n 22_o 2d_o he_o reprove_v his_o disciple_n for_o their_o contention_n about_o their_o future_a grandeur_n and_o seem_v to_o check_v the_o man_n who_o only_o call_v he_o good_a master_n 10.17_o mar._n 10.17_o as_o if_o the_o ascribe_v goodness_n to_o one_o who_o he_o take_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a man_n be_v too_o near_o a_o encroachment_n upon_o the_o sacred_a character_n of_o the_o supreme_a god_n and_o can_v we_o imagine_v he_o will_v be_v so_o tender_a in_o every_o such_o little_a particular_a and_o yet_o so_o very_o careless_a in_o those_o important_a affair_n wherein_o the_o eternal_a interest_n of_o his_o follower_n will_v be_v concern_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n endure_v this_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o believe_v yet_o that_o the_o concern_v be_v so_o great_a the_o late_a scribble_a arrian_n own_v when_o to_o the_o charge_n of_o blasphemy_n impute_v to_o his_o party_n for_o deny_v the_o eternal_a godhead_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o retort_v that_o question_n upon_o we_o 3._o vindication_n of_o unitarian_n p._n 3._o if_o you_o err_v do_v not_o you_o both_o blaspheme_v and_o commit_v idolatry_n in_o worship_v the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o coequal_a with_o the_o father_n we_o must_v be_v guilty_a of_o both_o if_o they_o be_v not_o but_o for_o the_o son_n we_o hope_v enough_o have_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v say_v to_o prove_v we_o be_v free_a from_o danger_n on_o that_o side_n to_o clear_v our_o own_o practice_n yet_o far_o we_o will_v trace_v those_o footstep_n our_o adversary_n themselves_o have_v tread_v before_o we_o and_o make_v use_n of_o those_o instance_n they_o have_v lay_v together_o on_o this_o occaon_n so_o the_o apostle_n pray_v to_o their_o master_n lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n 17.5_o luk._n 17.5_o a_o petition_n of_o a_o strange_a nature_n to_o one_o that_o be_v no_o more_o than_o their_o fellow_n creature_n and_o so_o far_o from_o any_o encourage_v exaltation_n in_o the_o world_n that_o whereas_o the_o fox_n have_v hole_n and_o the_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n have_v nest_n he_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n how_o can_v he_o give_v they_o faith_n who_o can_v not_o as_o it_o seem_v give_v himself_o security_n from_o worldly_a persecution_n but_o our_o lord_n give_v they_o no_o check_n for_o mislaying_a their_o petition_n nor_o do_v he_o bid_v they_o seek_v to_o his_o father_n
though_o it_o be_v a_o inward_a grace_n a_o strengthen_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o they_o require_v of_o he_o again_o when_o the_o disciple_n be_v with_o he_o on_o shipboard_n and_o during_o his_o quiet_a sleep_n just_o sink_v by_o the_o violence_n of_o a_o angry_a tempest_n they_o in_o a_o fright_n wake_v their_o master_n and_o cry_v out_o to_o he_o lord_n save_v we_o we_o perish_v 8.25_o mat._n 8.25_o if_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o mere_a man_n the_o disciple_n act_v with_o much_o less_o sense_n than_o jonah_n mariner_n who_o every_o one_o in_o the_o storm_n call_v upon_o their_o god_n for_o help_n and_o summon_v sleep_v ionas_n not_o to_o save_v they_o by_o his_o power_n but_o to_o join_v with_o they_o in_o call_v upon_o his_o god_n for_o be_v it_o ever_o hear_v before_o that_o when_o a_o ship_n be_v just_a sink_v or_o run_v upon_o a_o rock_n the_o ship_n crew_n run_v to_o some_o poor_a ignorant_a passenger_n to_o beg_v their_o security_n from_o he_o the_o mariner_n though_o convince_v that_o he_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a person_n make_v no_o such_o application_n to_o saint_n paul_n in_o a_o parallel_n danger_n it_o be_v god_n alone_o who_o can_v command_v the_o sea_n and_o wind_n his_o permissive_a word_n make_v they_o ruffle_v the_o universe_n and_o put_v nature_n into_o a_o consternation_n the_o same_o word_n lay_v they_o still_o as_o in_o their_o first_o original_n ere_o uncorrupted_a nature_n know_v any_o thing_n terrible_a or_o dangerous_a in_o the_o case_n before_o we_o our_o saviour_n answer_v they_o not_o as_o that_o king_n of_o israel_n do_v the_o woman_n if_o the_o lord_n help_v thou_o not_o what_o can_v i_o do_v but_o he_o arise_v and_o rebuke_v the_o wind_n and_o the_o sea_n and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a calm_a nature_n in_o its_o great_a hurry_n own_a his_o divine_a authority_n only_o his_o disciple_n stumble_v upon_o the_o question_n 27._o ver_fw-la 27._o what_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v this_o that_o even_o the_o wind_n and_o the_o sea_n obey_v he_o they_o talk_v like_o man_n beside_o themselves_o with_o fear_n they_o call_v upon_o he_o for_o help_n as_o if_o they_o have_v believe_v he_o to_o be_v god_n they_o reflect_v upon_o that_o deliverance_n he_o have_v give_v they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v no_o more_o than_o man_n but_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o any_o error_n they_o be_v in_o in_o their_o first_o devotion_n but_o by_o his_o mercy_n encourage_v they_o to_o do_v the_o same_o again_o upon_o a_o like_a occasion_n what_o the_o disciple_n do_v here_o in_o a_o storm_n at_o sea_n that_o saint_n stephen_n the_o first_o martyr_n for_o christianity_n do_v in_o a_o more_o violent_a storm_n of_o persecution_n on_o land_n for_o when_o he_o come_v to_o his_o last_o agony_n when_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a season_n for_o a_o good_a man_n to_o exert_v the_o utmost_a vigour_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o charity_n then_o for_o himself_o and_o with_o respect_n to_o his_o own_o soul_n he_o pray_v 7.59_o act_n 7.59_o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n the_o frequent_a expire_a ejaculation_n of_o holy_a saint_n and_o martyr_n after_o he_o compare_v now_o this_o with_o that_o assertion_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n concern_v death_n 7._o eccles._n 12_o 7._o then_o shall_v the_o dust_n return_v to_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o and_o the_o consequence_n will_v be_v either_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o great_a author_n or_o creator_n and_o giver_n of_o the_o rational_a soul_n or_o else_o that_o this_o holy_a martyr_n then_o when_o fill_v in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o extreme_a hour_n when_o common_o man_n apprehension_n of_o futurity_n be_v most_o clear_a and_o rational_a talk_v in_o a_o very_a impertinent_a and_o sinful_a manner_n to_o devote_v his_o soul_n to_o he_o who_o can_v have_v no_o right_a to_o it_o if_o he_o be_v a_o mere_a creature_n and_o to_o forget_v his_o god_n franciscus_n davidis_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v here_o that_o stephen_n do_v not_o call_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n but_o upon_o god_n the_o father_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v translate_v the_o expression_n o_o thou_o lord_n of_o jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n but_o this_o socinus_n have_v strong_o confute_v though_o upon_o their_o common_a principle_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o mere_a creature_n franciscus_n undertake_v the_o much_o more_o rational_a part_n however_o here_o his_o subterfuge_n be_v nothing_o worth_a it_o be_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o who_o bear_v that_o proper_a name_n of_o jesus_n from_o his_o circumcision_n for_o who_o sake_n stephen_n be_v now_o persecute_v to_o death_n by_o the_o malicious_a jew_n it_o be_v the_o same_o jesus_n who_o he_o see_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n when_o the_o heaven_n open_v to_o give_v he_o such_o a_o view_n of_o future_a glory_n prepare_v for_o martyr_n as_o may_v support_v and_o encourage_v he_o under_o his_o suffering_n it_o be_v to_o he_o therefore_o that_o stephen_n apply_v himself_o and_o sit_v himself_o for_o a_o glorious_a and_o happy_a exit_fw-la by_o that_o admirable_a resignation_n but_o neither_o do_v saint_n stephen_n stop_v there_o but_o as_o the_o utmost_a effort_n of_o a_o die_a martyr_n charity_n he_o add_v this_o to_o his_o former_a ejaculation_n 60._o ver_fw-la 60._o lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n he_o certain_o design_v exemplary_a charity_n in_o this_o and_o to_o imitate_v his_o die_a saviour_n who_o pray_v his_o father_n to_o forgive_v his_o murderer_n for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v but_o the_o martyr_n enemy_n will_v have_v have_v little_a reason_n to_o have_v admire_v his_o charity_n have_v he_o present_v his_o prayer_n for_o they_o to_o one_o who_o have_v no_o power_n to_o forgive_v they_o and_o the_o jew_n will_v be_v as_o ready_a now_o to_o make_v the_o objection_n as_o heretofore_o who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n only_o and_o if_o god_n to_o who_o vengeance_n belong_v in_o who_o sight_n the_o death_n of_o his_o saint_n be_v precious_a will_v certain_o avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o martyr_n upon_o their_o persecutor_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v it_o to_o pray_v to_o he_o to_o forgive_v they_o who_o not_o be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n himself_o can_v have_v no_o power_n to_o forgive_v those_o who_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o most_o high_a god_n so_o as_o to_o give_v they_o any_o security_n but_o above_o all_o he_o can_v never_o have_v hope_v for_o any_o acceptance_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o any_o petition_n whatsoever_o have_v he_o now_o in_o his_o last_o extremity_n be_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n saint_n paul_n have_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o extraordinary_a revelation_n have_v be_v snatch_v up_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n where_o he_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v thing_n not_o lawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o utter_v 9_o 2_o cor._n 1●_n 7_o 8_o 9_o indeed_o thing_n unspeakable_a lest_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v exalt_v above_o measure_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o those_o revelation_n there_o be_v give_v to_o he_o a_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o buffet_v he_o this_o be_v a_o very_a severe_a humiliation_n and_o saint_n paul_n be_v sensible_a of_o it_o and_o at_o first_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o text_n very_o uneasy_a under_o it_o saint_n paul_n know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o best_a remedy_n for_o all_o calamity_n be_v prayer_n that_o prayer_n present_v to_o the_o true_a god_n with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n can_v not_o return_v unfruitful_a but_o saint_n paul_n present_o apply_v himself_o to_o christ_n for_o this_o cause_n i_o beseech_v the_o lord_n thrice_o that_o it_o may_v depart_v from_o i_o say_v he_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o my_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o for_o my_o strength_n be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n by_o the_o lord_n here_o the_o socinian_o themselves_o understand_v our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o allege_v this_o text_n as_o a_o proof_n of_o pious_a man_n pray_v to_o christ_n now_o have_v saint_n paul_n pray_v to_o christ_n for_o assistance_n and_o relief_n in_o such_o a_o case_n where_o only_o the_o supreme_a god_n can_v real_o help_v he_o if_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o mere_a creature_n than_o such_o a_o prayer_n must_v be_v idolatrous_a and_o such_o service_n be_v call_v idolatry_n wherein_o the_o creature_n be_v rather_o worship_v than_o the_o creator_n and_o christ_n a_o creature_n must_v as_o lucifer_n of_o old_a have_v endeavour_v to_o set_v himself_o up_o for_o a_o rival_n god_n and_o prosecute_v a_o separate_a interest_n of_o his_o own_o and_o manage_v and_o assist_v his_o servant_n in_o a_o way_n of_o opposition_n to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o
so_o he_o must_v have_v grace_n of_o his_o own_o and_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o to_o employ_v for_o the_o use_n of_o his_o own_o devotoe_n for_o so_o saint_n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o christ_n refer_v he_o not_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o strength_n of_o god_n for_o security_n from_o the_o violence_n of_o satan_n but_o tell_v he_o my_o grace_n and_o my_o strength_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o need_n of_o apply_v himself_o to_o any_o other_o now_o if_o saint_n paul_n be_v in_o this_o case_n guilty_a of_o idolatry_n all_o those_o who_o follow_v the_o pattern_n of_o saint_n paul_n must_v incur_v the_o same_o guilt_n but_o he_o be_v not_o guilty_a therefore_o neither_o be_v his_o imitator_n guilty_a of_o it_o the_o socinian_o in_o proof_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o pray_v to_o christ_n allege_v far_a saint_n paul_n join_v he_o with_o god_n the_o father_n in_o his_o own_o prayer_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o to_o who_o he_o be_v there_o write_v 3.11_o ●_o thess_n 3.11_o now_o god_n himself_o and_o our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n direct_v our_o way_n unto_o you_o where_o he_o take_v for_o grant_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v both_o copartner_n in_o the_o same_o direct_a power_n and_o therefore_o he_o equal_o petition_n they_o both_o for_o guidance_n in_o his_o design_n of_o visit_v the_o thessalonian_o what_o the_o apostle_n himself_o do_v in_o a_o letter_n send_v to_o believer_n for_o their_o instruction_n in_o matter_n concern_v their_o salvation_n we_o need_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o will_v be_v very_o apt_a to_o follow_v he_o in_o so_o that_o either_o this_o pray_v to_o christ_n be_v lawful_a and_o reasonable_a in_o itself_o or_o else_o the_o apostle_n must_v be_v conclude_v to_o have_v it_o in_o his_o mind_n only_o to_o abuse_v those_o he_o write_v to_o and_o to_o draw_v they_o by_o his_o extraordinary_a influence_n upon_o they_o into_o sin_n for_o a_o sin_n it_o must_v be_v to_o make_v any_o mere_a creature_n the_o vltimate_a object_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o passage_n do_v so_o be_v indisputable_a if_o at_o least_o its_o own_a that_o he_o make_v god_n the_o father_n such_o a_o object_n for_o he_o join_v they_o together_o put_v no_o mark_n of_o inferiority_n or_o subordinacy_n upon_o jesus_n christ_n but_o what_o he_o beg_v of_o the_o father_n the_o same_z he_o beg_v of_o the_o son_n in_o one_o continue_a expression_n and_o the_o apostle_n frequent_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o those_o salutation_n he_o send_v to_o the_o several_a church_n where_o he_o wish_v they_o grace_n mercy_n and_o peace_n equal_o from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n grace_n mercy_n and_o peace_n be_v all_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a gift_n as_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o father_n so_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o son_n else_o it_o will_v be_v very_o impertinent_a to_o petition_v they_o equal_o for_o it_o and_o of_o very_o ill_a consequence_n for_o it_o will_v easy_o bring_v such_o a_o notion_n into_o man_n head_n as_o that_o some_o create_v be_v might_n have_v a_o power_n of_o give_v gift_n of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n as_o well_o as_o the_o supreme_a god_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a in_o our_o most_o serious_a devotion_n to_o join_v he_o who_o alone_o be_v god_n with_o one_o who_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o creature_n to_o set_v they_o in_o a_o rank_n as_o equal_a as_o word_n will_v allow_v and_o to_o conclude_v a_o prayer_n to_o the_o great_a creator_n of_o all_o thing_n insufficient_a to_o procure_v any_o good_a from_o he_o unless_o it_o be_v back_v and_o strengthen_v by_o the_o join_a formality_n of_o a_o address_n to_o a_o dependent_a creature_n but_o we_o need_v not_o so_o much_o insist_v on_o this_o particular_a since_o the_o same_o socinian_o as_o a_o vindication_n of_o prayer_n address_v to_o our_o saviour_n take_v notice_n of_o that_o piece_n of_o religious_a worship_n as_o be_v make_v the_o very_a characteristic_a or_o distinguish_a note_n of_o christian_n so_o ananias_n answer_v the_o command_n of_o go_v to_o visit_v and_o baptize_v the_o new_o convert_v saul_n 9.14.21_o act_n 9.14.21_o he_o have_v authority_n from_o the_o chief_a priest_n to_o bind_v all_o that_o call_v on_o thy_o name_n and_o when_o saul_n first_o begin_v to_o preach_v christ_n at_o damascus_n all_o man_n ask_v with_o amazement_n if_o it_o be_v not_o he_o who_o have_v late_o destroy_v all_o that_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v all_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o that_o it_o seem_v from_o hence_o that_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o be_v use_v as_o reciprocal_a term_n every_o one_o who_o believe_v in_o christ_n will_v call_v upon_o he_o or_o pray_v to_o he_o every_o one_o who_o pray_v to_o he_o must_v believe_v on_o he_o for_o as_o the_o apostle_n elsewhere_o argue_v how_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o or_o pray_v to_o he_o in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v so_o again_o st._n paul_n inscribe_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n ●_o 1_o cor._n 1._o ●_o to_o those_o who_o be_v sanctify_v in_o christ_n jesus_n call_v to_o be_v saint_n with_o all_o that_o in_o every_o place_n call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i._n e._n to_o all_o christian_n for_o who_o general_a use_n and_o instruction_n he_o write_v that_o epistle_n as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o same_o christian_n be_v describe_v as_o such_o 2.22_o 2_o tim._n 2.22_o who_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o pure_a heart_n these_o be_v the_o evidence_n draw_v by_o the_o socinian_o themselves_o out_o of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o practice_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o very_a infancy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o be_v sufficient_a for_o that_o purpose_n now_o that_o those_o who_o accompany_v with_o our_o lord_n himself_o during_o his_o converse_n upon_o earth_n or_o that_o those_o apostle_n who_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o extraordinary_a influence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o that_o those_o first_o christian_n who_o take_v the_o ●oke_n of_o christ_n upon_o they_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v certain_o preach_v to_o they_o in_o its_o original_a simplicity_n that_o all_o these_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o abominable_a idolatry_n and_o that_o when_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v original_o jew_n who_o have_v a_o irreconcilable_a aversion_n to_o any_o thing_n that_o look_v in_o the_o least_o ●ike_a idolatry_n and_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o shall_v have_v so_o little_a regard_n for_o his_o disciple_n as_o to_o let_v they_o commit_v a_o gross_a sin_n ●f_o a_o damn_v nature_n without_o any_o check_n or_o reproof_n that_o that_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o believer_n on_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n that_o both_o these_o shall_v so_o very_o early_o not_o only_o permit_v but_o encourage_v and_o persuade_v man_n to_o commit_v idolatry_n and_o all_o this_o at_o a_o time_n when_o they_o pretend_v to_o promote_v the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o when_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v to_o all_o mankind_n that_o idolatry_n be_v a_o sin_n irrational_a in_o itself_o and_o detestable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o the_o one_o part_n shall_v commit_v and_o the_o other_o promote_v idolatry_n under_o such_o circumstance_n be_v absolute_o incredible_a they_o have_v the_o pagan_a world_n at_o that_o time_n to_o reform_v the_o apostle_n be_v all_o willing_a to_o spend_v and_o be_v spend_v to_o carry_v on_o that_o glorious_a and_o merciful_a work_n at_o the_o utmost_a hazard_n of_o their_o life_n the_o great_a and_o cry_a sin_n of_o the_o gentile_a world_n be_v their_o idolatry_n that_o of_o which_o st._n paul_n particular_o take_v notice_n with_o grief_n and_o anger_n among_o the_o athenian_n but_o it_o have_v be_v a_o strange_a method_n of_o reform_v a_o idolatrous_a world_n by_o advance_v the_o same_o practice_n without_o any_o other_o correction_n but_o only_o a_o variation_n of_o the_o object_n as_o if_o pray_v to_o a_o man_n have_v not_o be_v as_o great_a a_o error_n as_o pray_v to_o a_o genius_n or_o the_o sun_n or_o some_o other_o bright_a star_n or_o a_o ox_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n such_o thing_n will_v have_v render_v the_o gospel_n foolishness_n with_o a_o witness_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o none_o will_v have_v wonder_v that_o christ_n shall_v have_v cull_v out_o poor_a ignorant_a fisherman_n and_o other_o illiterate_a person_n to_o be_v the_o first_o preacher_n since_o such_o a_o senseless_a method_n of_o procedure_n be_v only_o fit_a for_o such_o dull_a and_o unthinking_a creature_n to_o prosecute_v but_o
for_o our_o comfort_n the_o first_o christian_n be_v free_a from_o any_o such_o folly_n and_o all_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o heretic_n through_o all_o age_n have_v free_v they_o from_o any_o such_o imputation_n they_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o take_v care_n not_o to_o provoke_v he_o who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n to_o jealousy_n by_o set_v up_o a_o mere_a creature_n in_o competition_n with_o he_o the_o christian_n in_o that_o time_n show_v their_o extreme_a hatred_n of_o idolatry_n in_o that_o all_o the_o allurement_n and_o terror_n in_o the_o world_n can_v not_o possible_o draw_v they_o to_o it_o in_o other_o instance_n if_o they_o will_v but_o have_v throw_v a_o little_a incense_n into_o the_o fire_n burn_v on_o a_o idol_n altar_n if_o they_o will_v but_o have_v make_v the_o small_a condescension_n to_o some_o admire_a heathen_a deity_n they_o may_v have_v be_v blessed_v both_o with_o impunity_n and_o reward_n and_o sure_o it_o can_v be_v impute_v to_o nothing_o but_o a_o ridiculous_o perverse_a humour_n to_o refuse_v all_o kind_n of_o submission_n to_o creature-god_n mere_o because_o they_o be_v creature_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n themselves_o to_o worship_n or_o pray_v to_o a_o creature_n of_o their_o own_o set_n up_o we_o find_v not_o but_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v more_o tractable_a and_o so_o more_o reasonable_a in_o the_o point_n when_o they_o have_v once_o get_v the_o gusto_n of_o idolatry_n in_o the_o golden_a calf_n and_o have_v the_o fetter_n of_o religious_a elder_n and_o governor_n knock_v off_o their_o heel_n they_o stand_v out_o at_o nothing_o but_o be_v ready_a to_o worship_v any_o little_a idol_n any_o of_o their_o neighbour_n recommend_v to_o they_o and_o other_o idolatrous_a nation_n the_o roman_n in_o particular_a think_v it_o but_o reasonable_a that_o when_o they_o have_v set_v up_o some_o god_n for_o themselves_o according_a to_o their_o own_o humour_n they_o shall_v compile_v all_o the_o divinity_n they_o can_v and_o secure_v themselves_o if_o not_o by_o the_o quality_n at_o least_o by_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o their_o go_n but_o when_o the_o jew_n be_v once_o true_o purge_v from_o their_o idolatrous_a humour_n by_o severe_a and_o terrible_a judgement_n they_o will_v never_o more_o at_o their_o utmost_a peril_n admit_v of_o the_o least_o umbrage_n of_o it_o and_o the_o convert_a gentile_n will_v have_v dye_v a_o thousand_o death_n rather_o than_o have_v bring_v such_o a_o scandal_n upon_o christianity_n as_o to_o have_v retain_v or_o advance_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v have_v lay_v they_o open_a to_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o have_v seduce_v or_o pervert_v their_o brethren_n we_o no_o where_n find_v the_o apostle_n or_o any_o apostolic_a man_n ever_o vindicate_v that_o worship_n they_o offer_v to_o our_o lord_n with_o that_o pretence_n that_o they_o go_v to_o he_o only_o as_o ●_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n as_o the_o roman_a distinction_n be_v or_o that_o they_o may_v not_o press_v too_o rude_o upon_o god_n without_o address_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o some_o favourite_n servant_n we_o never_o find_v they_o argue_v that_o they_o only_o pray_v to_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v pray_v for_o they_o though_o he_o always_o do_v so_o as_o be_v the_o sole_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n nor_o do_v they_o ever_o defend_v their_o practice_n by_o that_o allegation_n that_o they_o do_v not_o terminate_v their_o adoration_n upon_o christ_n but_o upon_o his_o father_n the_o contrary_n will_v easy_o have_v be_v prove_v against_o they_o from_o their_o own_o write_n yet_o after_o all_o they_o be_v not_o idolater_n they_o do_v not_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o a_o mere_a creature_n which_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o creator_n therefore_o that_o christ_n to_o who_o they_o make_v their_o address_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a creature_n yet_o as_o he_o be_v man_n he_o can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a creature_n therefore_o he_o be_v more_o than_o man_n therefore_o he_o be_v god_n the_o true_a and_o almighty_a god_n the_o great_a creator_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o thus_o have_v we_o make_v good_a our_o argument_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_a god_n equal_a with_o his_o father_n from_o that_o otherwise_o indefensible_a practice_n of_o worship_v he_o or_o pray_v determinate_o to_o he_o as_o the_o giver_n of_o all_o good_a gift_n equal_o with_o his_o father_n if_o he_o be_v own_a to_o be_v the_o one_o true_a god_n we_o can_v have_v no_o scruple_n no_o fear_n of_o offend_v upon_o we_o in_o pray_v to_o he_o and_o express_v all_o the_o sign_n of_o external_a religious_a adoration_n towards_o he_o if_o he_o be_v not_o own_a to_o be_v the_o one_o true_a god_n then_o there_o be_v no_o argument_n which_o either_o a_o socinian_n or_o any_o other_o can_v bring_v to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o pray_v to_o he_o as_o god_n but_o it_o will_v equal_o serve_v either_o papist_n in_o their_o pray_n to_o image_n saint_n or_o angel_n or_o pagan_n in_o pray_v to_o their_o confess_a idol_n and_o therefore_o the_o socinian_o themselves_o fair_o confess_v with_o respect_n to_o those_o text_n before-cited_n where_o christian_n be_v know_v by_o that_o character_n of_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o those_o word_n do_v so_o comprehend_v all_o that_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v exhibit_v to_o christ_n by_o his_o faithful_a people_n that_o they_o describe_v it_o by_o that_o one_o the_o most_o considerable_a part_n of_o it_o namely_o bege_v assistance_n from_o he_o in_o our_o prayer_n cum_fw-la necesse_fw-la sit_fw-la eum_fw-la cujus_fw-la nomen_fw-la invoces_fw-la pro_fw-la deo_fw-la competente_fw-la sensu_fw-la colere_fw-la since_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o worship_v he_o as_o god_n in_o some_o fit_a sense_n who_o name_n you_o call_v upon_o in_o prayer_n but_o there_o be_v no_o other_o fit_a sense_n in_o which_o we_o can_v call_v upon_o he_o as_o god_n but_o that_o which_o make_v he_o the_o true_a the_o eternal_a god_n therefore_o if_o he_o may_v be_v call_v upon_o as_o god_n without_o idolatry_n he_o must_v be_v that_o true_a that_o eternal_a god_n we_o have_v at_o last_o by_o god_n assistance_n go_v through_o these_o several_a head_n of_o discourse_n from_o which_o we_o propound_v at_o first_o to_o prove_v that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n equal_a with_o his_o father_n or_o the_o true_a the_o eternal_a god_n we_o have_v prove_v this_o from_o those_o several_a account_n of_o his_o appearance_n and_o his_o nature_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n namely_o that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o appear_v to_o and_o converse_v with_o abraham_n before_o the_o fatal_a destruction_n of_o sodom_n and_o that_o he_o there_o bear_v the_o name_n jehovah_n the_o name_n of_o god_n incommunicable_a to_o any_o other_o that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o throne_n the_o psalmist_n declare_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n after_o who_o decay_n and_o perish_v he_o yet_o shall_v continue_v beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o time_n that_o christ_n our_o lord_n shall_v be_v that_o child_n that_o son_n give_v we_o in_o time_n on_o who_o shoulder_n the_o government_n shall_v be_v lay_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o peace_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o righteous_a branch_n spring_v up_o to_o david_n who_o name_n shall_v be_v the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n and_o final_o that_o he_o the_o bless_a jesus_n shall_v be_v that_o ruler_n of_o israel_n who_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n ephrata_n who_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v of_o old_a from_o everlasting_a we_o have_v prove_v the_o same_o assertion_n from_o those_o several_a declaration_n our_o saviour_n have_v make_v concern_v himself_o and_o his_o disciple_n afterward_o concern_v he_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o namely_o that_o of_o saint_n matthew_n of_o the_o angel_n prediction_n to_o joseph_n to_o which_o the_o evangelist_n apply_v the_o prophecy_n that_o our_o saviour_n incarnate_a shall_v be_v call_v immanuel_n or_o god_n with_o we_o that_o of_o our_o lord_n join_v himself_o in_o equal_a rank_n with_o his_o father_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o baptism_n order_v it_o to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o have_v prove_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v that_o word_n which_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n which_o be_v with_o god_n which_o be_v god_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v visible_a and_o invisible_a in_o heaven_n and_o upon_o earth_n that_o according_a to_o
by_o god_n appoint_v the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n four_o by_o his_o resurrection_n thus_o he_o but_o our_o new_a undertaker_n to_o render_v these_o thing_n the_o more_o plausible_a have_v give_v we_o a_o new_a set_v or_o division_n of_o the_o reason_n why_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o title_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v in_o scripture_n found_v upon_o these_o five_o thing_n two_o that_o be_v take_v from_o his_o twofold_a birth_n the_o one_o out_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o other_o out_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o his_o resurrection_n which_o make_v he_o undoubted_o the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n his_o only_a beget_v son_n 5._o thought_n on_o sherlock_n vindication_n of_o the_o trinity_n p._n 4_o 5._o his_o own_o or_o his_o proper_a son_n three_o other_o which_o be_v draw_v from_o his_o office_n the_o first_o because_o he_o be_v that_o prophet_n who_o his_o father_n have_v sanctify_v and_o send_v into_o the_o world_n with_o a_o extraordinary_a commission_n second_o because_o he_o be_v the_o great_a highpriest_n immediate_o call_v to_o that_o office_n by_o god_n himself_o the_o three_o because_o he_o be_v the_o king_n who_o god_n have_v exalt_v to_o a_o supreme_a power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n now_o these_o reason_n thus_o multiply_v though_o we_o shall_v allow_v they_o all_o true_a yet_o they_o come_v not_o up_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v true_a christ_n real_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o conception_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n but_o suppose_v with_o the_o socinian_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o a_o person_n but_o only_o the_o influence_n of_o almighty_a god_n there_o be_v not_o enough_o in_o that_o birth_n so_o miraculous_a as_o it_o be_v to_o give_v our_o saviour_n the_o title_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n distinct_o and_o exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o dr._n heylin_n though_o far_o enough_o from_o deny_v the_o eternal_a deity_n of_o christ_n yet_o seem_v very_o willing_a to_o rest_v in_o this_o reason_n that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n pure_o upon_o it_o or_o because_o he_o be_v the_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v or_o his_o love_a son_n or_o the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n and_o approve_v of_o maldonat_n opinion_n that_o the_o belove_a son_n and_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n be_v term_n reciprocal_a but_o the_o mistake_n be_v apparent_a for_o though_o isaac_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o abraham_n it_o do_v not_o argue_v that_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a engrosser_n of_o his_o love_n the_o contrary_a be_v apparent_a from_o abraham_n carriage_n in_o the_o case_n of_o ishmael_n when_o he_o take_v the_o necessity_n of_o turn_v he_o and_o his_o mother_n out_o of_o door_n so_o grievous_o 21.11_o gen._n 21.11_o and_o when_o upon_o god_n promise_v he_o a_o son_n by_o sarah_n who_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o his_o blessing_n the_o tender_a father_n yet_o beg_v that_o ishmael_n may_v also_o live_v in_o his_o sight_n 17.18_o gen._n 17.18_o i._n e._n be_v partaker_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o extraordinary_a blessing_n too_o beside_o that_o isaac_n be_v call_v abraham_n only_o beget_v son_n in_o contradistinction_n to_o ishmael_n isaac_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n with_o respect_n to_o god_n promise_n and_o as_o be_v the_o only_a son_n of_o the_o free_a woman_n and_o proper_o enough_o yet_o we_o see_v by_o course_n of_o nature_n abraham_n have_v more_o son_n than_o isaac_n therefore_o isaac_n be_v not_o abraham_n only_o beget_v son_n in_o a_o sense_n so_o eminent_a as_o our_o lord_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n 168._o heylin_n on_o the_o creed_n p._n 168._o the_o father_n have_v no_o other_o son_n beget_v by_o himself_o but_o christ_n but_o though_o sometime_o man_n do_v love_v a_o only_a child_n at_o a_o extraordinary_a rate_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o always_o nor_o necessary_o so_o for_o love_n be_v sometime_o guide_v by_o reason_n and_o obedience_n be_v the_o only_a rational_a ground_n of_o ●aternal_a affection_n several_a child_n may_v ●e_v as_o obedient_a as_o one_o and_o therefore_o several_a may_v as_o rational_o be_v love_v as_o one_o in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n but_o far_o neither_o be_v our_o saviour_n conception_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n so_o very_o great_a a_o miracle_n as_o to_o set_v our_o saviour_n on_o that_o account_n so_o far_o above_o every_o creature_n for_o as_o doctor_n pearson_n well_o observe_v 107._o pearson_n on_o the_o creed_n p._n 107._o adam_n the_o first_o man_n be_v make_v immediate_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n no_o humane_a faculty_n concur_v at_o all_o and_o adam_n be_v therefore_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o evangelist_n now_o there_o can_v be_v a_o power_n so_o much_o great_a require_v to_o give_v a_o man_n a_o be_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o a_o virgin_n than_o to_o frame_v he_o at_o first_o out_o of_o a_o piece_n of_o earth_n as_o to_o make_v so_o great_a a_o distance_n necessary_a as_o be_v between_o the_o first_o and_o the_o second_o adam_n for_o jesus_n christ_n our_o second_o adam_n must_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o so_o peculiar_a a_o manner_n as_o must_v make_v he_o infinite_o superior_a to_o any_o other_o creature_n he_o be_v design_v to_o exercise_v such_o a_o power_n as_o no_o other_o creature_n can_v possible_o be_v capable_a of_o we_o allow_v then_o our_o lord_n birth_n and_o conception_n to_o have_v be_v one_o ground_n of_o his_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o not_o the_o first_o it_o be_v no_o where_n call_v so_o in_o scripture_n nor_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o fix_v he_o in_o that_o supereminent_a station_n wherein_o our_o faith_n be_v fix_v upon_o he_o the_o second_o reason_n of_o his_o filiation_n be_v yet_o much_o more_o deficient_a viz._n his_o resurrection_n or_o raise_n from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o we_o find_v none_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o scripture_n on_o that_o reason_n that_o our_o saviour_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a we_o know_v if_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a by_o his_o own_o power_n as_o indeed_o he_o 18._o joh._n 2.19_o john_n 10.17_o 18._o and_o he_o only_o be_v as_o himself_o assert_n that_o afford_v we_o a_o great_a difference_n between_o he_o and_o all_o other_o person_n but_o utter_o destroy_v the_o socinian_n ground_n of_o his_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o for_o such_o troublesome_a passage_n as_o these_o i_o find_v a_o remarkable_a say_n of_o smalcius_n which_o show_v we_o the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o their_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o plain_a scripture_n and_o it_o be_v this_o speak_v of_o christ_n be_v call_v god_n he_o proceed_v when_o we_o find_v it_o declare_v in_o scripture_n not_o only_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o very_o often_o and_o very_o plain_o that_o god_n be_v make_v man_n consider_v that_o this_o be_v a_o proposition_n absurd_a whole_o contrary_a to_o right_a reason_n and_o full_a of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n we_o believe_v it_o must_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_a to_o find_v out_o some_o mode_n of_o speak_v according_a to_o which_o one_o may_v say_v this_o concern_v god_n than_o to_o interpret_v thing_n simple_o and_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o socinian_o have_v resolve_v not_o to_o regulate_v their_o opinion_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o reduce_v the_o scripture_n to_o their_o opinion_n this_o however_o be_v plain_a deal_n and_o a_o sufficient_a warning_n to_o read_v their_o discourse_n with_o the_o great_a caution_n and_o intention_n of_o mind_n but_o if_o the_o socinian_o make_v use_v of_o this_o art_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n in_o matter_n of_o the_o clear_a nature_n and_o so_o often_o repeat_v we_o can_v doubt_v but_o they_o will_v rather_o pitch_v on_o some_o unknown_a figure_n to_o elude_v those_o text_n which_o imply_v our_o saviour_n raise_v himself_n from_o the_o dead_a than_o own_o his_o unity_n with_o his_o father_n in_o the_o same_o essence_n or_o nature_n whereby_o both_o the_o assertion_n that_o christ_n raise_v himself_o and_o that_o he_o be_v raise_v by_o his_o father_n from_o the_o dead_a be_v so_o easy_o reconcile_v but_o allow_v they_o their_o own_o fancy_n if_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a by_o any_o power_n of_o his_o own_o but_o only_o by_o that_o of_o his_o father_n and_o yet_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n on_o account_n of_o his_o resurrection_n than_o all_o those_o who_o shall_v rise_v from_o the_o
dead_a before_o that_o great_a day_n must_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o our_o saviour_n be_v and_o consequent_o our_o savour_n can_v on_o account_n of_o such_o resurrection_n be_v so_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o to_o be_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o though_o that_o title_n be_v so_o exclusive_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n as_o for_o the_o three_o reason_n of_o his_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n derive_v from_o his_o office_n it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o god_n have_v sanctify_v our_o saviour_n and_o send_v he_o into_o the_o world_n but_o so_o he_o sanctify_a jeremy_n and_o so_o he_o sanctify_a john_n the_o baptist_n and_o the_o last_o in_o particular_a he_o send_v into_o the_o world_n with_o a_o extraordinary_a commission_n i._n e._n to_o preach_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n and_o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n against_o his_o public_a appearance_n which_o employ_v be_v both_o whole_o extraordinary_a but_o as_o for_o that_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o he_o whereby_o say_v they_o he_o be_v anoint_v to_o his_o office_n without_o measure_n there_o be_v no_o particularity_n eminent_o distinguish_v he_o in_o that_o from_o his_o own_o apostle_n upon_o who_o the_o spirit_n descend_v in_o a_o visible_a manner_n at_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n and_o fit_v they_o so_o for_o the_o same_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o every_o way_n promote_a the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n indeed_o we_o no_o where_n find_v the_o apostle_n call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n on_o account_n of_o their_o be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n but_o we_o see_v our_o saviour_n be_v declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v on_o that_o occasion_n but_o he_o be_v own_a by_o the_o same_o title_n at_o his_o transfiguration_n too_o when_o there_o be_v no_o effusion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o there_o be_v some_o peculiarly_a eminent_a reason_n for_o give_v our_o lord_n this_o title_n which_o can_v not_o be_v apply_v on_o any_o account_n to_o any_o other_o person_n if_o we_o reflect_v on_o the_o second_o ground_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v because_o he_o be_v our_o great_a highpriest_n and_o so_o constitute_v by_o god_n himself_o our_o author_n proof_n of_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a viz._n from_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o psalmist_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n 5.5_o heb._n 5.5_o this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o quote_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n for_o though_o those_o word_n be_v there_o repeat_v as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o that_o epistle_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o a_o different_a sense_n or_o to_o a_o new_a purpose_n but_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n priesthood_n and_o the_o greatness_n and_o excellency_n of_o that_o office_n undertake_v by_o he_o tell_v we_o no_o man_n take_v this_o honour_n to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aaron_n now_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o our_o saviour_n have_v such_o a_o call_v as_o well_o as_o aaron_n for_o his_o father_n who_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o show_v his_o propriety_n in_o his_o son_n and_o his_o love_n to_o he_o by_o those_o word_n so_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v strange_a that_o his_o father_n shall_v lay_v so_o great_a a_o honour_n upon_o he_o but_o then_o his_o title_n to_o the_o priesthood_n itself_o be_v found_v on_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o 6._o ver_fw-la 6._o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n so_o then_o the_o sonship_n of_o christ_n be_v antecedent_n to_o his_o priestly_a office_n and_o he_o be_v make_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o not_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v our_o highpriest_n as_o for_o the_o last_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n viz._n because_o he_o be_v exalt_v to_o the_o supreme_a power_n over_o all_o thing_n and_o so_o be_v our_o king_n 1.5_o hab._n 1.5_o which_o he_o prove_v again_o from_o the_o same_o word_n as_o quote_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n there_o yet_o again_o the_o same_o truth_n occur_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o enter_v upon_o his_o kingly_a office_n for_o by_o he_o god_n make_v the_o world_n and_o our_o saviour_n never_o have_v a_o be_v but_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o if_o god_n by_o he_o make_v the_o world_n 2._o ver_fw-la 2._o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v and_o he_o can_v not_o be_v our_o king_n before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v we_o who_o be_v a_o part_n of_o these_o world_n be_v those_o creature_n over_o who_o he_o be_v to_o be_v king_n then_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o be_v our_o king_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v his_o son_n on_o that_o account_n beside_o if_o we_o shall_v allow_v all_o these_o thing_n the_o whole_a grant_n will_v be_v useless_a for_o christ_n be_v call_v as_o before_o we_o observe_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o eminent_a and_o distinguish_a manner_n above_o all_o other_o but_o if_o upon_o account_n of_o his_o office_n prophetical_a priestly_a or_o regal_a christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n than_o all_o those_o who_o exercise_v the_o same_o function_n in_o the_o world_n may_v upon_o the_o same_o reason_n lie_v claim_v to_o the_o same_o title_n for_o of_o some_o of_o they_o we_o know_v the_o psalmist_n say_v they_o be_v god_n and_o they_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a but_o if_o they_o can_v all_o just_o lie_v claim_v to_o the_o same_o title_n then_o there_o be_v nothing_o peculiar_a to_o our_o saviour_n include_v in_o that_o be_v the_o son_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n which_o yet_o the_o very_a title_n itself_o import_v all_o these_o reason_n than_o not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o give_v our_o saviour_n the_o title_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o manner_n so_o supereminent_a to_o all_o other_o creature_n and_o their_o original_n particular_o to_o angel_n who_o be_v of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n there_o must_v remain_v some_o other_o ground_n for_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o call_v and_o that_o be_v his_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o father_n which_o put_v he_o into_o such_o a_o relation_n to_o his_o father_n as_o no_o other_o creature_n can_v possible_o pretend_v to_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o whole_a of_o his_o five_o precedent_n reason_n do_v not_o fill_v up_o the_o idea_n or_o make_v good_a the_o full_a meaning_n of_o those_o term_n wherein_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n his_o belove_a son_n or_o his_o own_o son_n for_o if_o i_o be_o bear_v of_o my_o mother_n but_o not_o beget_v in_o his_o own_o image_n by_o my_o repute_a father_n though_o my_o repute_a father_n be_v able_a after_o death_n to_o raise_v i_o to_o life_n again_o though_o he_o be_v able_a to_o confer_v upon_o i_o all_o the_o authority_n in_o the_o universe_n yet_o all_o this_o will_v be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v i_o just_o the_o title_n of_o my_o father_n only-begotten_a son_n though_o perhaps_o he_o never_o have_v any_o other_o that_o by_o all_o these_o reason_n together_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o putative_a son_n but_o real_o no_o more_o relate_v to_o my_o suppose_a father_n than_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n when_o before_o her_o espousal_n he_o be_v beget_v in_o she_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nay_o shall_v we_o admit_v of_o the_o very_a unphilosophical_a hypothesis_n of_o ruarus_n 262._o quid_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la absurdi_fw-la si_fw-la spiritum_fw-la dei_fw-la venas_fw-la in_o virgin_n uterum_fw-la descendentes_fw-la emulsisse_fw-la atque_fw-la ex_fw-la sanguine_fw-la coagulato_fw-la embryonem_fw-la formasse_o dicam_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la atque_fw-la id_fw-la fit_a spiritu_fw-la in_o masculo_fw-la semine_fw-la latente_fw-la ruarus_fw-la ad_fw-la mersennum_fw-la epistola_fw-la centur._n 1_o num._n 56._o p._n 262._o the_o most_o modest_a of_o the_o socinian_n tribe_n all_o will_v be_v too_o little_a to_o make_v good_a this_o glorious_a idea_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n but_o his_o eternal_a generation_n answer_v all_o and_o make_v our_o saviour_n as_o proper_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n as_o i_o or_o any_o other_o lawful_a son_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o his_o
hedge_n which_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n have_v set_v about_o he_o he_o can_v not_o but_o be_v sensible_a of_o that_o restraint_n lay_v upon_o he_o by_o a_o superior_a hand_n at_o last_o after_o all_o the_o expression_n of_o diabolical_a malice_n against_o he_o job_n come_v out_o from_o the_o furnace_n of_o his_o affliction_n more_o pure_a more_o illustrious_a and_o happy_a and_o every_o way_n infinite_o more_o considerable_a than_o he_o be_v before_o affliction_n teach_v he_o more_o particular_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o life_n of_o his_o redeemer_n he_o see_v his_o mighty_a saviour_n at_o a_o distance_n but_o with_o so_o clear_a and_o strong_a a_o faith_n as_o preserve_v he_o in_o all_o his_o bitter_a suffering_n from_o sink_v in_o despair_n while_o he_o see_v the_o expire_a rage_n of_o his_o cruel_a adversary_n ready_a to_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n and_o himself_o among_o other_o like_a to_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o redeemer_n eternal_a triumph_n he_o rise_v from_o the_o dunghill_n he_o sit_v on_o in_o his_o misery_n more_o experience_v in_o the_o uncertain_a and_o unsatisfactory_a nature_n of_o all_o sublunary_a thing_n in_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o own_o temper_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o his_o enemy_n so_o that_o he_o be_v admirable_o fit_v on_o all_o hand_n to_o be_v a_o teacher_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n both_o by_o his_o pious_a lecture_n and_o his_o more_o instructive_a example_n what_o be_v the_o case_n of_o job_n so_o long_o before_o be_v the_o case_n of_o those_o more_o numerous_a wretch_n who_o satan_n be_v permit_v to_o possess_v about_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n incarnation_n though_o they_o be_v miserable_a enough_o in_o be_v the_o unhappy_a receptacle_n of_o infernal_a spirit_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o providential_a guard_n about_o they_o still_o which_o check_v the_o malicious_a design_n of_o hell_n and_o make_v those_o poor_a creature_n though_o so_o terrible_a to_o other_o yet_o not_o to_o sink_v by_o themselves_o into_o despair_n those_o strange_a effect_n of_o a_o unusual_a vigour_n apparent_a in_o the_o person_n possess_v show_v the_o world_n plain_o how_o strong_a the_o curse_a inmate_n be_v how_o little_a natural_a strength_n be_v able_a to_o oppose_v he_o and_o how_o dreadful_a the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n must_v have_v be_v to_o all_o have_v not_o strong_a and_o weighty_a chain_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o yet_o we_o can_v imagine_v those_o person_n thus_o possess_v be_v deprive_v so_o whole_o of_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o have_v no_o lucid_a interval_n at_o all_o the_o man_n and_o the_o rational_a heavenborn_a soul_n act_v sometime_o and_o the_o poor_a wretch_n be_v sensible_a of_o their_o own_o deplorable_a condition_n this_o make_v they_o long_o for_o a_o deliverer_n and_o when_o they_o see_v he_o not_o to_o punish_v themselves_o with_o ordinary_a jewish_a prejudices_fw-la against_o he_o but_o in_o spite_n of_o hell_n itself_o and_o all_o the_o reluctance_n of_o indwelling_a devil_n to_o fly_v to_o his_o foot_n and_o to_o seek_v a_o remedy_n for_o their_o calamity_n at_o his_o hand_n they_o live_v in_o hope_n amid_o all_o their_o former_a torment_n and_o now_o they_o show_v it_o their_o eye_n be_v not_o so_o thick_a but_o that_o they_o can_v see_v the_o son_n of_o god_n through_o a_o veil_n of_o flesh_n and_o of_o a_o humble_a and_o inferior_a state_n nay_o those_o very_a devil_n within_o they_o be_v instrumental_a against_o their_o design_n to_o confirm_v their_o faith_n and_o hope_n by_o that_o unwillingness_n they_o will_v certain_o express_v to_o quit_v any_o seat_n where_o they_o have_v engross_v a_o power_n and_o to_o appear_v before_o a_o all-knowing_a and_o inexorable_a judge_n and_o by_o those_o confession_n which_o they_o make_v who_o in_o that_o point_n as_o to_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o they_o confess_v it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v than_o all_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n and_o prejudice_v hypocrite_n put_v together_o we_o may_v yet_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o devil_n motion_n that_o make_v the_o miserable_a demoniac_a when_o he_o see_v jesus_n afar_o off_o run_v and_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v he_o 5.6_o mark_v 5.6_o they_o be_v devil_n who_o drive_v the_o unhappy_a wretch_n to_o take_v up_o his_o habitation_n among_o the_o tomb_n they_o be_v devil_n that_o drive_v he_o about_o the_o mountain_n day_n and_o night_n where_o he_o be_v continual_o cry_v and_o cut_v himself_o with_o stone_n whatsoever_o can_v be_v mischievous_a to_o he_o that_o they_o urge_v he_o to_o but_o it_o be_v reason_n divine_o influence_v and_o a_o deep_a sense_n of_o that_o slavery_n he_o then_o lay_v under_o that_o bring_v he_o to_o his_o master_n foot_n where_o only_o help_v and_o salvation_n can_v be_v find_v certain_a misery_n general_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o reason_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o a_o exact_a weigh_v of_o all_o thing_n and_o a_o impartial_a examination_n of_o their_o nature_n if_o it_o befall_v a_o impenitent_a guilty_a soul_n it_o give_v he_o a_o irrefragable_a conviction_n of_o the_o eternity_n of_o those_o woe_n he_o be_v engage_v in_o this_o make_v he_o desperate_a if_o it_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o one_o who_o though_o very_o guilty_a yet_o endeavour_v to_o expiate_v his_o crime_n by_o a_o sincere_a repentance_n it_o make_v he_o find_v unanswerable_a reason_n why_o he_o shall_v still_o hope_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o that_o with_o some_o considerable_a assurance_n of_o be_v a_o partaker_n in_o it_o those_o very_a demoniac_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v awaken_v to_o a_o sense_n of_o themselves_o by_o that_o heavy_a judgement_n they_o be_v lay_v under_o their_o lucid_a interval_n teach_v they_o to_o humble_v themselves_o under_o god_n afflict_a hand_n it_o make_v they_o long_o to_o see_v the_o strong_a man_n arm_v cast_v out_o by_o one_o that_o be_v strong_a than_o he_o and_o their_o liberty_n assert_v by_o one_o mighty_a to_o save_v and_o therefore_o they_o see_v what_o stubborn_a fool_n will_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o and_o fly_v to_o that_o saviour_n with_o a_o eager_a haste_n who_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o more_o unhappy_o possess_v country_n man_n contemn_v and_o persecute_v now_o this_o be_v one_o reason_n of_o god_n permission_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n shall_v tyrannize_v upon_o humane_a body_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n he_o shall_v be_v more_o active_a than_o ordinary_a when_o his_o power_n be_v draw_v towards_o a_o end_n and_o it_o be_v as_o little_a to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o he_o shall_v lose_v his_o aim_n and_o that_o his_o violence_n shall_v make_v all_o long_a the_o more_o earnest_o that_o he_o who_o be_v their_o much_o expect_a saviour_n shall_v come_v quick_o nor_o be_v it_o any_o wonder_n that_o though_o god_n permit_v the_o devil_n to_o afflict_v their_o body_n yet_o he_o himself_o shall_v support_v their_o spirit_n from_o sink_v under_o that_o calamity_n since_o his_o own_o son_n appearance_n be_v now_o at_o hand_n and_o hell_n utmost_a fury_n will_v easy_o submit_v to_o his_o almighty_a power_n god_n permit_v this_o insolence_n of_o the_o devil_n more_o particular_o about_o the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n incarnation_n that_o as_o the_o malice_n and_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v by_o that_o mean_v the_o more_o apparent_a so_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o son_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o his_o yet_o great_a power_n may_v be_v the_o more_o illustrious_a so_o that_o though_o man_n be_v under_o a_o present_a affliction_n and_o that_o far_o from_o be_v unmerited_a since_o they_o have_v sin_v to_o deserve_v more_o than_o temporal_a punishment_n shall_v god_n have_v be_v extreme_a to_o mark_v what_o be_v do_v amiss_o as_o appear_v by_o mary_n magdalen_n case_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n observe_v much_o be_v forgive_v yet_o they_o be_v much_o advantage_v by_o that_o temporary_a affliction_n and_o that_o freedom_n they_o obtain_v teach_v they_o the_o more_o industrious_o to_o celebrate_v god_n glory_n and_o to_o admire_v that_o goodness_n show_v by_o he_o to_o the_o child_n of_o men._n for_o when_o they_o see_v what_o they_o have_v suffer_v and_o how_o extreme_a a_o danger_n they_o have_v incur_v before_o by_o yield_v to_o sin_n man_n with_o their_o cure_n recover_v their_o reason_n will_v be_v afraid_a to_o sin_v any_o more_o lest_o a_o worse_a thing_n may_v come_v to_o they_o hence_o we_o find_v the_o man_n possess_v with_o a_o legion_n of_o devil_n when_o they_o be_v cast_v out_o desire_v to_o be_v with_o his_o deliverer_n which_o though_o it_o be_v refuse_v he_o yet_o christ_n bid_v he_o go_v home_o to_o his_o friend_n 19.20_o mark_v 5.18_o 19.20_o and_o to_o tell_v they_o how_o great_a thing_n the_o lord_n have_v do_v for_o he_o and_o have_v have_v compassion_n upon_o he_o which_o according_o he_o do_v
equal_a value_n to_o those_o injury_n do_v by_o that_o prisoner_n to_o he_o to_o who_o that_o redemption-price_n be_v pay_v down_o as_o if_o i_o take_v up_o good_n or_o silver_n coin_n of_o any_o one_o for_o which_o i_o myself_o be_o whole_o insolvent_a and_o another_o undertake_v for_o i_o to_o discharge_v the_o debt_n the_o creditor_n will_v scarce_o take_v it_o ill_o if_o he_o pay_v to_o the_o full_a in_o gold_n or_o jewel_n for_o that_o silver_n or_o those_o good_n he_o have_v give_v credit_n for_o though_o the_o debt_n be_v not_o pay_v in_o kind_n 146._o cat._n rac._n §._o 6._o c._n 8._o p._n 146._o but_o say_v they_o it_o be_v ordinary_a to_o say_v that_o one_o d●●p_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v enough_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o god_n must_v be_v very_o unjust_a to_o exact_v so_o extraordinary_a suffering_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o shall_v shed_v so_o much_o of_o his_o blood_n and_o die_v at_o last_o and_o so_o pay_v a_o price_n for_o man_n sin_n so_o much_o great_a than_o necessary_a we_o may_v easy_o answer_v this_o cavil_v by_o say_v that_o a_o argument_n draw_v against_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n mere_o from_o a_o hyperbolical_a expression_n be_v altogether_o invalid_a nor_o be_v the_o christian_a church_n in_o general_a bind_v to_o answer_v for_o every_o passionate_a expression_n which_o one_o of_o her_o son_n may_v use_v but_o we_o may_v consider_v further_o that_o whereas_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o bloody_a sacrifice_n offer_v by_o man_n in_o former_a age_n be_v to_o signify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o a_o expiation_n be_v to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o world_n sin_n and_o to_o keep_v up_o their_o hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o it_o and_o whereas_o we_o be_v assure_v in_o god_n word_n that_o without_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n though_o the_o shed_v one_o drop_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o intend_a sacrifice_n be_v as_o real_a bloodshedding_a as_o the_o draw_v out_o of_o all_o be_v and_o though_o one_o drop_v of_o that_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n have_v as_o much_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n in_o it_o as_o the_o whole_a mass_n can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v yet_o that_o be_v not_o all_o that_o be_v aim_v at_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v so_o to_o be_v shed_v as_o that_o death_n may_v natural_o follow_v on_o that_o action_n which_o be_v not_o likely_a to_o follow_v on_o the_o shed_v one_o or_o only_o a_o few_o drop_n and_o without_o this_o death_n the_o beast_n be_v not_o fit_a for_o sacrifice_n so_o much_o blood_n be_v require_v as_o be_v necessary_a to_o sprinkle_v on_o several_a thing_n in_o agreeance_n with_o which_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n too_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 12.24_o heb._n 12.24_o the_o blood_n of_o sprinkle_v the_o blood_n then_o shed_v of_o old_a represent_v somewhat_o expiatory_a but_o not_o as_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o a_o animal_n but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o such_o a_o creature_n sacrifice_v on_o the_o altar_n to_o that_o god_n who_o be_v to_o be_v atone_v so_o though_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o every_o drop_n of_o it_o as_o shed_v for_o we_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_a worth_n yet_o the_o worth_n of_o that_o blood_n with_o respect_n to_o we_o depend_v on_o his_o be_v sacrifice_v or_o make_v a_o offer_n for_o sin_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v have_v not_o his_o life_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o his_o blood_n before_o for_o as_o we_o easy_o apprehend_v that_o the_o fair_a beast_n design_v for_o sacrifice_n by_o man_n if_o yet_o it_o die_v alone_o or_o accidental_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n but_o that_o to_o make_v it_o such_o it_o be_v necessary_a the_o priest_n shall_v make_v it_o bleed_v to_o death_n so_o have_v our_o saviour_n humane_a nature_n submit_v only_o to_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o mortality_n or_o fall_v by_o a_o natural_a death_n he_o have_v be_v no_o offer_v no_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n but_o he_o real_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o be_v own_a as_o such_o in_o scripture_n therefore_o his_o blood_n too_o be_v to_o be_v shed_v and_o that_o so_o far_o as_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o his_o humane_a life_n or_o the_o union_n between_o his_o rational_a soul_n and_o his_o mortal_a body_n so_o that_o the_o extraordinary_a suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n take_v not_o away_o from_o the_o worth_n of_o his_o blood_n in_o itself_o but_o his_o blood_n can_v have_v have_v no_o effect_n upon_o we_o for_o the_o wash_n away_o of_o our_o sin_n have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n our_o propitiation_n as_o well_o as_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o own_o with_o all_o humility_n and_o thankfulness_n the_o goodness_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n on_o our_o account_n by_o permit_v those_o power_n to_o kill_v he_o which_o he_o can_v have_v destroy_v with_o one_o revenge_a word_n nor_o can_v we_o less_o acknowledge_v the_o goodness_n of_o he_o and_o our_o father_n who_o be_v please_v to_o accept_v of_o that_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n his_o son_n satisfaction_n for_o our_o debt_n which_o he_o be_v no_o way_n oblige_v to_o but_o by_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o divine_a love_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n from_o all_o eternity_n but_o from_o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n make_v satisfaction_n to_o his_o father_n for_o our_o sin_n they_o draw_v a_o very_a unhappy_a consequence_n for_o they_o tell_v we_o quod_fw-la hominibus_fw-la fenestram_fw-la ad_fw-la peccandi_fw-la licentiam_fw-la aperiat_fw-la aut_fw-la certè_fw-la ad_fw-la socordiam_fw-la in_o pielate_fw-la colenda_fw-la invitet_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o it_o give_v man_n a_o open_a liberty_n to_o sin_n or_o at_o least_o give_v they_o great_a encouragement_n to_o slothfulness_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o religion_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o all_o our_o sin_n than_o we_o be_v free_a from_o all_o obligation_n to_o any_o punishment_n for_o sin_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o condition_n reasonable_o propound_v to_o we_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v free_a from_o those_o punishment_n or_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a that_o god_n shall_v still_o make_v practical_a holiness_n a_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n when_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n have_v full_o satisfy_v his_o father_n wrath_n with_o respect_n to_o all_o our_o sin_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v this_o charge_n will_v be_v very_o heavy_a if_o it_o be_v true_a but_o will_v they_o consider_v those_o very_a text_n they_o endeavour_v to_o confirm_v this_o objection_n by_o they_o will_v easy_o see_v how_o they_o confound_v themselves_o and_o slander_v that_o holy_a doctrine_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o of_o jesus_n christ_n 2.14_o tit._n 2.14_o that_o he_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purify_v unto_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n zealous_a of_o good_a work_n all_o this_o we_o steadfast_o believe_v 5.15_o 2_o cor._n 5.15_o and_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o that_o they_o which_o live_v shall_v not_o henceforth_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o which_o die_v for_o they_o and_z rise_v again_o we_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n 1.4_o gal._n 1.4_o that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n 5.27_o eph._n 5.27_o that_o he_o may_v present_v his_o church_n to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blemish_n we_o believe_v 9.14_o heb._n 9.14_o that_o our_o lord_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n 19_o 1_o pet._n 1.18_o 19_o and_o that_o we_o be_v redeem_v from_o our_o vain_a conversation_n not_o with_o corruptible_a thing_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n and_o without_o spot_n and_o from_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o conclude_v that_o our_o saviour_n suffering_n for_o we_o be_v original_o design_v to_o free_v we_o both_o from_o the_o punishment_n and_o gild_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o as_o we_o look_v up_o to_o our_o saviour_n as_o our_o priest_n and_o our_o sacrifice_n so_o we_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v our_o prophet_n and_o our_o king_n our_o instructor_n and_o our_o governor_n that_o he_o have_v be_v our_o instructor_n in_o all_o age_n by_o his_o messenger_n prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a and_o those_o to_o this_o day_n lawful_o entrust_v with_o the_o
harmless_a undefiled_a separate_a from_o sinner_n one_o that_o need_v not_o first_o to_o pray_v for_o pardon_n for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o afterward_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o and_o therefore_o he_o may_v be_v and_o be_v proper_o call_v the_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o 2.5_o 1_o tim._n 2.5_o as_o we_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o same_o text_n there_o be_v one_o god_n exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o deity_n which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o moses_n have_v be_v a_o mediator_n of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o christ_n be_v and_o it_o be_v further_o add_v of_o our_o mediator_n that_o he_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o which_o moses_n never_o do_v and_o though_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o his_o charitable_a zeal_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o have_v be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n which_o god_n have_v write_v that_o god_n by_o that_o mean_n may_v have_v be_v reconcile_v to_o his_o people_n that_o offer_v neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v accept_v because_o it_o can_v be_v no_o satisfaction_n to_o divine_a justice_n to_o punish_v one_o sinner_n and_o on_o account_n of_o that_o punishment_n to_o pardon_v another_o for_o why_o shall_v i_o pretend_v to_o satisfy_v that_o justice_n on_o behalf_n of_o another_o which_o shall_v it_o proceed_v severe_o will_v pass_v upon_o i_o without_o any_o such_o pretence_n but_o he_o who_o conscious_a of_o his_o own_o innocence_n be_v secure_a from_o any_o legal_a danger_n may_v with_o reason_n interpose_v vigorous_o for_o another_o in_o our_o present_a case_n our_o lord_n endeavour_v to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o that_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o god_n and_o man_n arise_v from_o sin_n god_n be_v the_o supreme_a lawgiver_n and_o have_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o uncontrollable_a power_n of_o punish_v trespasser_n upon_o his_o law_n man_n be_v the_o continual_a transgressor_n have_v by_o that_o mean_n whole_o forfeit_v all_o pretence_n to_o grace_n and_o favour_n therefore_o his_o case_n be_v itself_o desperate_a the_o mediation_n begin_v on_o god_n part_n our_o lord_n not_o be_v style_v the_o mediator_n between_o man_n and_o god_n but_o between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o whole_a mediation_n arise_v not_o from_o man_n hope_n but_o from_o god_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n which_o find_v out_o the_o mean_n of_o reconcile_a we_o to_o himself_o by_o his_o son_n perhaps_o a_o socinian_n will_v find_v it_o difficult_a to_o give_v a_o satisfactory_a reason_n why_o see_v the_o first_o covenant_n or_o that_o between_o god_n and_o israel_n can_v be_v make_v by_o the_o mediation_n of_o moses_n and_o confirm_v with_o shed_v the_o blood_n only_o of_o ordinary_a victim_n the_o evangelical_n covenant_n manage_v by_o the_o bless_a jesus_n a_o person_n very_o much_o superior_a to_o moses_n can_v not_o be_v confirm_v with_o blood_n of_o like_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o former_a we_o will_v own_v free_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o better_a covenant_n the_o promise_n in_o it_o more_o plain_a and_o numerous_a the_o hope_n be_v raise_v in_o man_n by_o it_o strong_a and_o more_o vigorous_a but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v account_v for_o in_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o undertaker_n and_o why_o christian_n shall_v not_o confide_v in_o god_n upon_o the_o same_o term_n on_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v be_v not_o easy_a to_o determine_v i_o be_o sure_a they_o be_v general_o represent_v as_o the_o most_o tractable_a person_n beside_o this_o there_o appear_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o mediatorship_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o moses_n on_o these_o account_n our_o saviour_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o mediatorial_n power_n be_v able_a to_o remit_v sin_n be_v able_a to_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o believer_n but_o moses_n can_v do_v no_o such_o thing_n he_o be_v only_o a_o suppliant_a to_o god_n for_o pardon_n for_o israel_n and_o socinian_n will_v scarce_o allow_v he_o give_v they_o so_o much_o as_o a_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n throughout_o the_o whole_a systeme_n of_o his_o law_n so_o that_o though_o we_o allow_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v some_o resemblance_n between_o the_o type_n and_o the_o anti-type_n yet_o we_o must_v allow_v a_o mighty_a distance_n between_o a_o common_a man_n and_o one_o on_o who_o the_o title_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o only_a beget_v son_n be_v fix_v and_o the_o resemblance_n must_v be_v between_o circumstance_n capable_a of_o be_v represent_v and_o not_o between_o those_o which_o be_v incapable_a of_o it_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o a_o external_a accident_n attend_v his_o humanity_n may_v be_v represent_v by_o the_o death_n of_o those_o creature_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n frequent_o to_o god_n the_o intercession_n of_o our_o saviour_n with_o his_o father_n for_o a_o sinful_a world_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o moses_n for_o a_o sinful_a nation_n but_o that_o satisfaction_n by_o christ_n give_v for_o sinner_n to_o his_o father_n justice_n be_v so_o great_a a_o thing_n as_o nothing_o can_v make_v any_o proportionable_a adumbration_n of_o it_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o people_n sin_n over_o the_o victim_n head_n and_o lay_v their_o iniquiry_n on_o the_o head_n of_o the_o scape-goat_n as_o a_o devote_a creature_n may_v keep_v up_o somewhat_o of_o a_o idea_n of_o what_o the_o messiah_n be_v afterward_o to_o do_v and_o suffer_v and_o the_o manner_n how_o but_o the_o symbol_n be_v so_o dark_a that_o even_o the_o prophecy_n of_o caiaphas_n point_v at_o the_o anti-type_n make_v very_o little_a impression_n upon_o the_o jew_n and_o make_v they_o expect_v very_o little_a from_o christ_n though_o they_o see_v frequent_a evidence_n of_o his_o divine_a mission_n and_o his_o death_n as_o a_o person_n devove_v and_o make_v sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n express_v it_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o there_o be_v another_o fetch_v as_o subtle_a as_o the_o rest_n that_o suppose_v a_o mediator_n ought_v to_o partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o both_o the_o party_n between_o who_o he_o be_v to_o make_v peace_n yet_o this_o touch_v not_o our_o saviour_n for_o his_o mediatorship_n be_v only_o to_o be_v employ_v in_o reconcile_a man_n to_o god_n for_o so_o say_v they_o we_o find_v god_n reconcile_a the_o world_n to_o himself_o in_o christ_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o reconcile_a himself_o to_o the_o world_n suppose_v this_o assertion_n true_a be_v it_o therefore_o impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v be_v angry_a with_o a_o sinful_a world_n if_o so_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v he_o send_v so_o many_o judgement_n particular_a and_o general_a upon_o man_n city_n and_o country_n do_v he_o lay_v his_o rod_n on_o man_n back_n at_o random_n without_o any_o displeasure_n against_o their_o crime_n or_o without_o any_o respect_n to_o their_o demerit_n do_v he_o drown_v the_o old_a world_n without_o be_v angry_a with_o they_o burn_v sodom_n and_o gomorrha_n with_o their_o neighbour_a city_n and_o yet_o not_o displease_v with_o they_o these_o thing_n be_v incredible_a that_o he_o be_v often_o angry_a with_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n we_o find_v frequent_o attest_v in_o scripture_n that_o as_o a_o evidence_n of_o his_o anger_n he_o punish_v they_o severe_o too_o we_o meet_v with_o upon_o record_n there_o if_o he_o can_v be_v angry_a with_o the_o sin_n of_o a_o particular_a people_n he_o may_v certain_o be_v angry_a with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o sin_n lose_v not_o its_o odious_a nature_n by_o be_v more_o diffusive_a if_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o their_o sin_n he_o must_v be_v angry_a with_o the_o sinner_n too_o especial_o if_o they_o be_v active_a and_o obstinate_a in_o their_o sin_n for_o though_o man_n as_o create_v at_o first_o in_o the_o likeness_n or_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v good_a yet_o man_n wherein_o that_o sacred_a image_n be_v deface_v by_o sin_n be_v odious_a and_o detestable_a a_o proper_a object_n of_o god_n displeasure_n and_o of_o himself_o incapable_a of_o avoid_v it_o but_o if_o god_n may_v be_v displease_v with_o sin_n and_o sinner_n and_o if_o his_o nature_n be_v pure_a and_o his_o law_n holy_a just_a and_o good_a he_o must_v be_v so_o than_o he_o must_v be_v reconcile_v to_o man_n or_o man_n must_v be_v eternal_o miserable_a and_o though_o we_o find_v god_n frequent_o in_o scripture_n call_v upon_o man_n to_o turn_v to_o he_o as_o if_o all_o the_o work_n lie_v on_o their_o hand_n yet_o he_o promise_v withal_o that_o he_o will_v turn_v to_o they_o 3.7_o mal._n 3.7_o and_o those_o kind_n repeat_v call_n be_v only_a evidence_n that_o he_o who_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o reason_n to_o be_v averse_a to_o it_o will_v yet_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o they_o as_o they_o can_v be_v to_o
return_v to_o their_o obedience_n to_o he_o and_o he_o be_v say_v to_o reconcile_v the_o world_n to_o himself_o in_o his_o son_n because_o he_o in_o concert_n with_o his_o son_n determine_v on_o that_o mean_n of_o pardon_n and_o remission_n to_o be_v grant_v to_o sinner_n which_o sinner_n themselves_o can_v never_o have_v pitch_v on_o and_o because_o man_n be_v natural_o backward_o to_o his_o own_o good_a but_o god_n ever_o seek_v it_o yet_o when_o we_o consider_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o a_o word_n of_o ecclesiastical_a use_n and_o signify_v particular_o such_o a_o reconciliation_n as_o be_v of_o penitent_n to_o the_o church_n by_o which_o for_o their_o crime_n they_o have_v be_v before_o excommunicate_v we_o look_v upon_o our_o saviour_n as_o our_o great_a highpriest_n make_v that_o peace_n for_o we_o and_o as_o penitent_n be_v not_o require_v to_o forgive_v the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v offend_v but_o the_o church_n kind_o forgive_v they_o though_o offender_n so_o the_o world_n reconcile_v to_o god_n do_v not_o forgive_v god_n or_o restore_v god_n to_o their_o favour_n but_o god_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o intercession_n of_o their_o highpriest_n forgive_v they_o and_o restore_v they_o to_o his_o favour_n to_o which_o end_n the_o doctrine_n of_o reconciliation_n i.e._n the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n be_v commit_v to_o god_n minister_n and_o we_o 20._o 2_o cor._n 5.19_o 20._o as_o ambassador_n from_o christ_n entreat_v man_n that_o they_o will_v be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n that_o be_v that_o they_o will_v turn_v every_o one_o from_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o way_n and_o so_o be_v reinstated_n in_o his_o favour_n it_o may_v seem_v not_o very_o easy_a to_o pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n when_o it_o call_v our_o saviour_n a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n so_o st._n john_n 2._o 1_o joh._n 2.1_o 2._o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n or_o the_o propitiatory_a or_o atone_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o again_o in_o this_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n 4.10_o 4.10_o but_o that_o he_o love_v we_o and_o send_v his_o son_n a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o so_o st._n paul_n 3.25_o rom._n 3.25_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o propitiation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n etc._n etc._n now_o will_v i_o fain_o be_v satisfy_v what_o be_v the_o benefit_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n a_o faith_n peculiar_a extraordinary_a and_o indispensible_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o the_o shed_n of_o that_o precious_a blood_n have_v no_o effect_n with_o relation_n to_o atone_v or_o satisfy_v god_n displeasure_n just_o express_v against_o our_o sin_n that_o christ_n blood_n have_v a_o real_a intrinsic_n value_v it_o will_v look_v somewhat_o harsh_o to_o deny_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a it_o shall_v have_v any_o such_o worth_n to_o render_v it_o capable_a of_o confirm_v the_o new_a covenant_n mutual_a compact_n make_v among_o the_o ancient_n with_o the_o solemnity_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n depend_v not_o at_o all_o on_o any_o inherent_a worth_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n nay_o cataline_n conspiracy_n though_o confirm_v with_o humane_a blood_n be_v not_o so_o confirm_v because_o humane_a blood_n be_v of_o a_o great_a value_n in_o itself_o than_o that_o of_o other_o creature_n but_o that_o by_o join_v at_o first_o in_o so_o horrid_a a_o action_n they_o may_v desperate_o conclude_v it_o to_o no_o purpose_n to_o stand_v out_o at_o any_o wickedness_n whatsoever_o but_o our_o saviour_n blood_n be_v particular_o prefer_v in_o its_o worth_n to_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o any_o corruptible_a riches_n whatsoever_o therefore_o must_v be_v in_o itself_o of_o infinite_a or_o transcendent_a worth_n and_o that_o infinite_a worth_n can_v not_o but_o effect_v some_o mighty_a good_a for_o we_o on_o account_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o depend_v on_o that_o blood_n nor_o can_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o redeemer_n or_o his_o suffering_n be_v less_o satisfactory_a because_o god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v he_o for_o so_o he_o may_v though_o our_o lord_n humiliation_n be_v voluntary_a the_o perfect_a agreement_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n neither_o detract_n from_o the_o father_n bounty_n nor_o the_o son_n willingness_n or_o freedom_n so_o isaac_n who_o be_v a_o type_n of_o our_o saviour_n must_v have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v resist_v his_o age_a father_n when_o he_o be_v prepare_v to_o sacrifice_v he_o but_o he_o do_v not_o imitate_v the_o antitype_n in_o that_o very_a particular_a of_o be_v lead_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n yet_o isaac_n willingness_n do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o have_v the_o solemnity_n go_v on_o as_o begin_v he_o will_v have_v be_v his_o father_n abraham_n sacrifice_n or_o his_o gift_n to_o almighty_a god_n as_o will_v jephtha_n daughter_n too_o notwithstanding_o her_o ready_a compliance_n with_o the_o import_n of_o her_o father_n vow_n but_o it_o be_v object_v that_o the_o cover_v of_o god_n ark_n appoint_v to_o be_v make_v by_o moses_n according_a to_o the_o pattern_n in_o the_o mount_n be_v call_v the_o propitiatory_a 23.22_o exod._n 23.22_o which_o we_o translate_v the_o mercy-seat_n the_o septuagint_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o title_n by_o st._n paul_n affix_v to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v certain_o in_o its_o original_a signification_n no_o more_o than_o what_o answer_v to_o its_o position_n about_o the_o ark_n that_o be_v a_o cover_v or_o that_o which_o close_v it_o up_o on_o the_o top_n translate_v by_o the_o word_n which_o signify_v a_o propitiatory_a on_o account_n of_o that_o immediate_a residence_n which_o god_n promise_v to_o keep_v there_o from_o the_o cherubim_v place_v on_o which_o cover_v he_o give_v answer_n to_o the_o petition_n of_o his_o supplicant_n thence_o call_v emphatical_o that_o god_n who_o dwell_v between_o the_o cherubim_n from_o whence_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n apply_v that_o word_n to_o our_o lord_n of_o who_o that_o propitiatory_a or_o mercy-seat_n be_v always_o account_v a_o type_n he_o mean_v that_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o peculiar_a residence_n of_o the_o deity_n or_o as_o he_o express_v himself_o that_o person_n in_o who_o dwell_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a from_o which_o body_n of_o he_o god_n himself_o give_v his_o answer_n of_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n to_o mankind_n and_o this_o must_v necessary_o have_v be_v if_o he_o inform_v his_o disciple_n right_o when_o he_o tell_v they_o he_o and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o and_o that_o whosoever_o have_v see_v he_o have_v see_v his_o father_n also_o the_o socinian_o seem_v very_o willing_a to_o own_o that_o our_o saviour_n passion_n serve_v to_o expiate_v our_o sin_n 153._o cat._n rac._n §._o 6._o c._n 8._o p._n 153._o cu_z joannes_n eum_fw-la propitiationem_fw-la pro_fw-la peccatis_fw-la nostris_fw-la appellat_fw-la significat_fw-la per_fw-la eum_fw-la peccata_fw-la nostra_fw-la expiari_fw-la when_o st._n john_n call_v he_o the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n he_o mean_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v expiate_v by_o he_o but_o nothing_o can_v expiate_v sin_n but_o what_o be_v satisfactory_a for_o sin_n or_o what_o bear_v that_o punishment_n for_o sinner_n which_o sinner_n themselves_o shall_v have_v bear_v hence_o expiation_n be_v often_o explain_v by_o satisfy_v so_o the_o beast_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n be_v put_v to_o death_n to_o intimate_v the_o demerit_n of_o the_o offerer_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v die_v for_o their_o own_o transgression_n hence_o those_o offering_n make_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n be_v style_v expiatory_a or_o purge_v not_o as_o if_o the_o beast_n offer_v by_o man_n to_o almighty_a god_n have_v any_o thing_n expiatory_a in_o themselves_o but_o they_o be_v call_v so_o on_o account_n of_o that_o relation_n they_o have_v to_o the_o great_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o real_o do_v what_o they_o only_o shadow_v out_o i._n e._n make_v a_o sufficient_a satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n otherwise_o why_o shall_v the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o of_o goat_n shall_v put_v away_o sin_n since_o they_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o be_v sacrifice_v as_o expiatory_a for_o sin_n but_o that_o their_o whole_a effect_n depend_v on_o their_o relative_a nature_n and_o their_o praesignification_n of_o that_o glorious_a offer_n to_o be_v make_v for_o man_n at_o last_o it_o have_v be_v only_o to_o put_v a_o shame_n upon_o miserable_a wretch_n to_o tell_v of_o expiate_v their_o sin_n by_o those_o mean_n by_o
habitual_a obedience_n yet_o he_o stop_v upon_o none_o of_o these_o consideration_n but_o be_v for_o aught_o we_o can_v find_v by_o the_o sacred_a story_n as_o ready_a to_o be_v offer_v as_o his_o parent_n be_v to_o offer_v he_o now_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o obedience_n can_v reasonable_o be_v expect_v from_o any_o but_o a_o son_n nor_o from_o any_o but_o the_o best_a of_o son_n such_o be_v isaac_n but_o as_o the_o burden_n the_o son_n of_o god_n undertake_v be_v infinite_o great_a than_o what_o isaac_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o eternal_a determination_n of_o heaven_n in_o respect_n of_o man_n infinite_o hard_a to_o comply_v with_o so_o it_o require_v a_o son_n more_o powerful_a more_o obedient_a more_o unite_v with_o his_o father_n than_o any_o earthly_a son_n can_v be_v with_o the_o most_o oblige_a earthly_a parent_n therefore_o there_o be_v that_o eternal_a unity_n of_o will_n between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o god_n the_o son_n it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v the_o least_o reluctance_n in_o the_o son_n against_o what_o be_v resolve_v on_o for_o the_o rescue_n of_o sinner_n from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v and_o therefore_o that_o decline_a the_o terrible_a hour_n which_o appear_v in_o his_o prayer_n before_o his_o be_v seize_v on_o by_o the_o jew_n be_v pure_o the_o effect_n of_o humane_a nature_n necessary_o infirm_a but_o clear_o understand_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o approach_a conflict_n and_o therefore_o show_v the_o result_n of_o the_o pure_a flesh_n and_o blood_n yet_o without_o sin_n again_o when_o we_o reflect_v on_o the_o relation_n between_o a_o father_n and_o a_o son_n as_o it_o be_v very_o close_a so_o their_o mutual_a love_n and_o affection_n must_v needs_o be_v very_o extraordinary_a and_o tender_a this_o be_v observe_v and_o expect_v among_o earthly_a parent_n and_o child_n and_o its_o wat_fw-mi nature_n command_v and_o religion_n so_o far_o as_o true_a oblige_v to_o this_o than_o must_v be_v much_o more_o eminent_a between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o so_o our_o lord_n himself_o teach_v we_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_z as_o the_o great_a evidence_n of_o that_o intense_a love_n 3.35_o john_n 3.35_o he_o have_v give_v he_o all_o thing_n into_o his_o hand_n he_o assert_v the_o same_o again_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_o show_v he_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v 5.20_o 5.20_o which_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o the_o great_a intimacy_n and_o unity_n the_o same_o jesus_n declare_v that_o his_o father_n hear_v he_o always_o 11.42_o 11.42_o and_o the_o palmist_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n speak_v to_o the_o son_n say_z 2.8_o psal_n 2.8_o ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o thy_o possession_n and_o on_o assurance_n of_o this_o christ_n when_o he_o reprove_v st._n peter_n for_o use_v his_o sword_n against_o those_o who_o come_v to_o take_v he_o tell_v he_o he_o can_v pray_v to_o his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v present_o send_v he_o more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n from_o all_o which_o circumstance_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o interest_n of_o a_o infinite_o obedient_a son_n with_o a_o infinite_o love_v father_n must_v be_v infinite_a therefore_o whereas_o man_n sin_n be_v infinite_o odious_a and_o that_o vengeance_n infinite_a which_o be_v by_o consequence_n to_o fall_v upon_o man_n for_o those_o sin_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o infinite_a interest_n that_o can_v possible_o by_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o divert_v that_o vengeance_n and_o this_o infinite_a interest_n be_v proper_a to_o god_n the_o son_n that_o be_v to_o such_o a_o son_n as_o be_v at_o unity_n nay_o be_v one_o with_o his_o father_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o christianity_n and_o a_o socinian_n himself_o will_v scarce_o contradict_v it_o to_o present_v all_o our_o prayer_n to_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n so_o whereas_o our_o lord_n teach_v his_o disciple_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n 14._o john_n 14.13_o 14._o that_o will_v i_o do_v that_o the_o father_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o son_n if_o you_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o 26._o 16.23_o 26._o he_o afterward_o vary_v thus_o in_o that_o day_n you_o shall_v ask_v i_o nothing_o very_o very_o i_o ay_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v give_v it_o you_o hitherto_o you_o have_v ask_v nothing_o in_o my_o name_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a which_o two_o text_n compare_v together_o show_v the_o absolute_a prevalency_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o our_o heavenly_a father_n and_o the_o absolute_a and_o indissoluble_a union_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n so_o that_o it_o may_v proper_o and_o without_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o contradiction_n be_v assert_v that_o what_o one_o do_v the_o other_o do_v and_o what_o the_o father_n grant_v for_o the_o son_n sake_n that_o the_o son_n grant_v nor_o can_v any_o thing_n of_o a_o heavenly_a nature_n be_v grant_v to_o mankind_n but_o by_o the_o deity_n so_o unite_v in_o itself_o by_o which_o consideration_n all_o inferior_a intercessor_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v exclude_v from_o be_v in_o themselves_o the_o object_n of_o our_o religious_a adoration_n because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o such_o adequate_a union_n of_o person_n between_o they_o nor_o any_o such_o absolute_a power_n or_o immediate_a interest_n in_o such_o inferior_a being_n as_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reasonable_a competition_n of_o interest_n between_o a_o son_n adopt_v out_o of_o commiseration_n and_o a_o only_o beget_v and_o universal_o love_v and_o obedient_a heir_n as_o then_o the_o interest_n of_o a_o son_n with_o the_o father_n be_v necessary_a for_o humane_a redemption_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n the_o son_n particular_o shall_v assume_v our_o nature_n to_o do_v and_o suffer_v for_o we_o in_o such_o a_o measure_n as_o we_o may_v be_v redeem_v upon_o acceptance_n of_o the_o proper_a condition_n from_o eternal_a destruction_n final_o the_o tenderness_n of_o the_o son_n ofttimes_o show_v itself_o when_o the_o gravity_n and_o just_a severity_n of_o a_o father_n seem_v inexorable_a to_o a_o offender_n yet_o even_o then_o when_o the_o father_n seem_v of_o himself_o and_o otherwise_o will_v be_v inflexible_a to_o the_o criminal_a he_o be_v please_v to_o see_v the_o tenderness_n of_o his_o son_n and_o will_v frequent_o encourage_v and_o accept_v of_o his_o intercession_n so_o if_o we_o may_v compare_v small_a thing_n with_o great_a our_o heavenly_a father_n deal_v with_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o intercession_n of_o his_o son_n and_o though_o justice_n cry_v out_o for_o vengeance_n against_o sinner_n he_o be_v particular_o well_o please_v when_o he_o see_v he_o clothe_v with_o flesh_n for_o accomplish_v that_o great_a work_n of_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n he_o be_v please_v at_o his_o interposition_n between_o the_o criminal_n and_o impendent_a punishment_n and_o since_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v whole_o incapable_a of_o flexible_a affection_n nothing_o but_o unbounded_a love_n mercy_n justice_n etc._n etc._n concentr_v in_o it_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o our_o incarnate_a lord_n our_o great_a highpriest_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o can_v be_v affect_v with_o our_o infirmity_n 9_o heb._n 5.7_o 8_o 9_o can_v have_v compassion_n on_o the_o ignorant_a and_o of_o they_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n when_o he_o offer_v up_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o strong_a cry_v and_o tear_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v he_o from_o death_n and_o be_v hear_v in_o that_o he_o fear_v though_o he_o be_v a_o son_n yet_o he_o learned_a obedience_n by_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v and_o be_v make_v perfect_a he_o become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v the_o assumption_n of_o our_o nature_n create_v in_o he_o a_o sympathetic_a tenderness_n of_o humane_a infirmity_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o tear_n over_o jerusalem_n and_o at_o the_o grave_a of_o lazarus_n yet_o he_o be_v free_a from_o all_o sin_n in_o those_o condescend_v tear_n of_o he_o now_o he_o that_o have_v such_o extraordinary_a compassion_n for_o miserable_a sinner_n can_v not_o but_o exert_v the_o utmost_a of_o his_o sacred_a interest_n on_o their_o behalf_n and_o make_v a_o free_a access_n for_o they_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n where_o such_o obedience_n interest_n and_o compassion_n be_v indispensible_o necessary_a for_o our_o good_a and_o those_o qualification_n be_v natural_o
most_o incident_a to_o the_o person_n who_o stand_v in_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o son_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o our_o nature_n and_o pity_v we_o and_o plead_v for_o we_o that_o how_o deplorable_a soever_o our_o condition_n may_v be_v in_o itself_o we_o may_v be_v in_o a_o capacity_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n it_o be_v proper_a that_o he_o who_o first_o give_v a_o be_v to_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o power_n shall_v when_o the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n be_v decay_v if_o he_o design_v mercy_n for_o they_o rectify_v their_o disorder_n and_o resettle_v they_o in_o such_o a_o state_n as_o might_n in_o some_o measure_n answer_v the_o original_a design_n of_o the_o creation_n that_o our_o saviour_n the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n we_o have_v former_o prove_v at_o large_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o st._n john_n gospel_n and_o several_a other_o scripture_n passage_n and_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n which_o even_o arian_n themselves_o acknowledge_v in_o that_o first_o creation_n as_o the_o wise_a man_n observe_v man_n be_v make_v upright_o 7.29_o eccles_n 7.29_o but_o he_o have_v now_o seek_v out_o to_o himself_o many_o invention_n be_v he_o but_o leave_v a_o little_a to_o himself_o he_o will_v need_v no_o other_o vengeance_n to_o be_v pour_v upon_o he_o but_o what_o he_o will_v soon_o draw_v down_o on_o his_o own_o head_n but_o god_n in_o pity_n to_o he_o be_v please_v to_o determine_v otherwise_o but_o as_o we_o observe_v before_o though_o a_o inferior_a creature_n be_v able_a to_o bring_v one_o in_o a_o happy_a state_n before_o into_o a_o ruinous_a condition_n as_o any_o little_a mischievous_a agent_n may_v yet_o those_o ruin_n so_o easy_o procure_v can_v not_o be_v so_o easy_o repair_v again_o we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n that_o man_n be_v create_v at_o first_o in_o the_o image_n of_o god_n that_o be_v his_o glory_n and_o excellence_n beyond_o the_o other_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a creation_n but_o that_o image_n of_o his_o maker_n be_v miserable_o deface_v in_o he_o by_o sin_n the_o bless_a jesus_n the_o eradiation_n of_o god_n glory_n 1.3_o heb._n 1.3_o and_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n therefore_o the_o most_o proper_a to_o renew_v in_o obedient_a man_n the_o blot_a image_n he_o have_v at_o first_o create_v he_o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v athanasius_n who_o we_o may_v just_o allege_v now_o in_o a_o matter_n little_o controvert_v 72._o athan._n de_fw-fr incar_n t._n 1._o p._n 72._o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o other_o but_o he_o who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n to_o create_v again_o or_o resettle_v that_o image_n in_o men._n it_o be_v true_a the_o socinian_o will_v persuade_v we_o the_o original_a image_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o nothing_o but_o dominion_n over_o his_o fellow-creature_n but_o that_o dominion_n over_o the_o creature_n can_v not_o answer_v that_o perfection_n the_o wise_a man_n advert_v to_o in_o man_n first_o creation_n no_o more_o than_o we_o can_v prove_v king_n and_o prince_n the_o more_o perfect_a because_o of_o that_o dominion_n god_n entrust_v they_o with_o or_o that_o among_o prince_n those_o who_o command_v the_o large_a empire_n shall_v be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o complete_a man_n but_o the_o original_a image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n consist_v in_o that_o purity_n and_o holiness_n which_o man_n be_v adorn_v with_o in_o his_o first_o creation_n and_o in_o that_o vast_a wisdom_n and_o capacious_a understanding_n whereby_o he_o know_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o his_o own_o happiness_n this_o purity_n and_o wisdom_n be_v ruin_v by_o his_o fall_n and_o this_o our_o saviour_n come_v effectual_o to_o restore_v by_o make_v such_o as_o believe_v in_o he_o new_a creature_n by_o which_o they_o be_v again_o renew_v in_o knowledge_n and_o in_o righteousness_n 4.24_o col._n 3.10_o eph._n 4.24_o and_o true_a holiness_n after_o the_o image_n of_o that_o god_n who_o create_v they_o now_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o a_o renewal_n of_o any_o thing_n we_o refer_v to_o somewhat_o that_o be_v before_o for_o that_o can_v be_v renew_v now_o that_o never_o be_v former_o but_o if_o the_o knowledge_n and_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n in_o the_o new_a man_n be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n at_o present_a and_o there_o be_v such_o knowledge_n and_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n in_o man_n before_o his_o fall_n without_o which_o it_o can_v not_o be_v renew_v by_o he_o who_o come_v to_o repair_v the_o ruin_n of_o that_o fall_n than_o that_o knowledge_n and_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n be_v original_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o which_o man_n be_v create_v and_o we_o need_v not_o fly_v to_o dominion_n as_o the_o sole_a instance_n of_o god_n image_n in_o man_n especial_o since_o his_o dominion_n be_v no_o more_o a_o image_n of_o god_n sovereignty_n than_o the_o government_n of_o all_o prince_n since_o have_v be_v a_o image_n of_o that_o for_o god_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o thing_n man_n be_v not_o and_o yet_o prince_n as_o well_o as_o other_o have_v have_v their_o share_n in_o the_o mischief_n arise_v from_o man_n fall_n though_o their_o government_n be_v as_o absolute_a as_o ever_o to_o this_o we_o may_v add_v that_o regenerate_v person_n be_v ordain_v to_o that_o title_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v most_o proper_a that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n shall_v be_v their_o great_a guide_n and_o conductor_n to_o that_o honour_n this_o we_o learn_v from_o st._n paul_n who_o lay_v down_o that_o mysterious_a doctrine_n of_o god_n prescience_n and_o predetermination_n as_o to_o the_o future_a state_n of_o man_n 8.29_o rom_n 8.29_o tell_v we_o that_o who_o god_n do_v foreknow_v he_o do_v also_o determine_v beforehand_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v conform_v to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o first-born_a of_o many_o brethren_n where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o those_o person_n who_o by_o this_o very_a apostle_n be_v elsewhere_o say_v to_o be_v renew_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n therefore_o the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o of_o god_n the_o son_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o those_o who_o image_n be_v the_o same_o must_v be_v one_o not_o metaphorical_o but_o real_o one_o our_o lord_n become_v our_o brother_n by_o assume_v our_o nature_n by_o submit_v to_o all_o the_o infirmity_n of_o humanity_n sin_n only_o except_v and_o he_o be_v the_o kind_a and_o the_o tender_a brother_n who_o lay_v down_o his_o own_o sacred_a life_n to_o restore_v a_o crew_n of_o wretched_a prodigal_n to_o the_o embrace_n of_o their_o father_n he_o envy_v not_o that_o where_o there_o be_v many_o mansion_n repent_v sinner_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o they_o but_o after_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n he_o ascend_v to_o his_o father_n and_o our_o father_n to_o his_o god_n and_o our_o god_n that_o he_o may_v prepare_v those_o very_a mansion_n for_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o behold_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n the_o father_n have_v bestow_v on_o we_o that_o we_o through_o the_o mediation_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o i_o insert_v that_o on_o good_a reason_n will_v appear_v to_o any_o one_o who_o consider_v with_o the_o apostle_n that_o 5._o gal._n 4.4_o 5._o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v god_n send_v forth_o his_o son_n make_v of_o a_o woman_n make_v under_o the_o law_n to_o redeem_v they_o that_o be_v in_o bondage_n in_o general_n and_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n this_o than_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o god_n the_o son_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o suffering_n we_o have_v from_o a_o equal_o authentic_a hand_n the_o bless_a jesus_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 18_o heb._n 2.9_o 18_o taste_v death_n for_o every_o man_n he_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v make_v perfect_a through_o suffering_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v we_o brethren_n forasmuch_o then_o as_o the_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o also_o himself_o take_v part_n of_o the_o same_o that_o through_o death_n he_o may_v destroy_v he_o that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o deliver_v they_o who_o through_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v all_o their_o life_n subject_a to_o bondage_n wherefore_o in_o all_o thing_n it_o behove_v he_o to_o be_v make_v like_o unto_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o
merciful_a and_o faithful_a highpriest_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n to_o make_v reconciliation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n or_o to_o atone_v for_o they_o i._n e._n to_o reconcile_v god_n to_o people_n that_o have_v sin_v for_o in_o that_o he_o himself_o have_v suffer_v be_v tempt_v he_o be_v able_a to_o succour_v they_o that_o be_v tempt_v there_o remain_v nothing_o more_o on_o this_o subject_a to_o be_v do_v but_o to_o draw_v a_o practical_a inference_n or_o two_o from_o our_o apostolical_a doctrine_n that_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n or_o that_o he_o who_o real_o and_o eternal_o be_v god_n take_v upon_o he_o humane_a nature_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n from_o hence_o we_o shall_v learn_v a_o just_a admiration_n of_o that_o transcendent_a love_n and_o infinite_a compassion_n extend_v to_o we_o by_o god_n the_o father_n in_o send_v by_o god_n the_o son_n in_o be_v send_v to_o and_o condescend_v to_o come_v among_o we_o word_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o express_v the_o mighty_a debt_n of_o gratitude_n we_o be_v engage_v in_o to_o heaven_n on_o that_o account_n only_a action_n may_v in_o some_o measure_n express_v our_o acknowledgement_n let_v we_o not_o conceit_n ourselves_o exempt_a from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n we_o lose_v our_o original_a innocence_n we_o be_v preclude_v from_o paradise_n from_o taste_v the_o tree_n of_o life_n by_o cherubim_n and_o a_o flame_a sword_n when_o can_v we_o then_o hope_v for_o we_o be_v create_v happy_a we_o forfeit_v it_o too_o too_o easy_o what_o can_v we_o afterward_o pretend_v to_o but_o god_n however_o provoke_v by_o the_o eternal_a intercession_n of_o his_o son_n have_v reserve_v mercy_n for_o we_o therefore_o he_o allow_v mankind_n a_o time_n and_o space_n of_o repentance_n repentance_n be_v the_o sole_a possible_a condition_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n repentance_n invalid_a yet_o and_o unfruitful_a in_o itself_o have_v it_o not_o be_v render_v acceptable_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o do_v assert_v in_o this_o particular_a appear_v from_o the_o song_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o the_o twenty_o four_o elder_n when_o they_o adore_v this_o lamb_n of_o god_n and_o praise_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o saint_n thou_o be_v slay_v 5.9_o rev._n 5.9_o and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n by_o thy_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n those_o so_o redeem_v from_o all_o part_n include_v all_o person_n die_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o god_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n some_o of_o who_o we_o find_v mention_v and_o praise_v for_o our_o example_n in_o the_o eleven_o to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o therefore_o when_o st._n john_n afterward_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o those_o who_o receive_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n on_o their_o forehead_n he_o first_o reckon_v up_o 144000_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n a_o certain_a for_o a_o uncertain_a number_n but_o after_o they_o he_o tell_v we_o he_o see_v a_o great_a multitude_n 14._o 7.9_o 14._o which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o kindred_n and_o people_n and_o tongue_n who_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o before_o the_o lamb_n clothe_v with_o white_a robe_n and_o with_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n of_o who_o and_o what_o they_o be_v when_o the_o apostle_n inquire_v of_o one_o of_o the_o elder_n he_o receive_v this_o answer_n these_o be_v they_o which_o come_v out_o of_o great_a tribulation_n and_o have_v wash_v their_o robe_n and_o have_v make_v they_o white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n now_o this_o numberless_a number_n of_o happy_a soul_n mark_v by_o heaven_n for_o its_o own_o represent_v all_o those_o walk_a and_o die_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n through_o all_o age_n for_o tribulation_n be_v the_o characteristic_a of_o a_o pious_a man_n before_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n as_o well_o as_o afterward_o but_o they_o have_v all_o their_o robe_n wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o same_o lamb_n therefore_o that_o blood_n be_v effectual_a for_o man_n salvation_n and_o render_v all_o their_o religious_a performance_n of_o which_o repentance_n be_v a_o chief_a acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n before_o such_o time_n as_o it_o be_v actual_o and_o open_o shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n that_o mankind_n may_v be_v apprehensive_a of_o their_o duty_n and_o be_v as_o certain_a in_o their_o repentance_n as_o they_o have_v be_v in_o their_o miscarriage_n god_n who_o have_v give_v they_o all_o the_o providential_a encouragement_n possible_a to_o serve_v he_o faithful_o and_o willing_o be_v please_v to_o send_v his_o messenger_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o call_v they_o to_o repentance_n so_o enoch_n by_o the_o transcendent_a holiness_n of_o his_o life_n which_o doubtless_o be_v accompany_v with_o as_o edify_a instruction_n preach_v repentance_n to_o a_o world_n even_o so_o early_o grow_v old_a in_o sin_n so_o noah_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n together_o preach_v repentance_n to_o a_o perish_a generation_n after_o the_o renewal_n of_o the_o world_n again_o from_o that_o stock_n purposely_o preserve_v in_o the_o ark_n prophet_n and_o holy_a man_n be_v frequent_o inspire_v by_o heaven_n and_o send_v through_o the_o world_n on_o the_o reform_n that_o too_o rare_o successful_a errand_n nor_o be_v they_o so_o whole_o confine_v to_o israel_n the_o lot_n of_o god_n own_o inheritance_n but_o that_o they_o sometime_o deliver_v message_n to_o the_o adjacent_a gentile_n so_o obadiah_n to_o edom_n jonah_n and_o nahum_n to_o nineveh_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v certain_o a_o effect_n of_o wonderful_a compassion_n that_o a_o god_n so_o just_o offend_v at_o humane_a crime_n shall_v have_v any_o respect_n to_o they_o or_o use_v so_o many_o method_n of_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o error_n and_o that_o misery_n attend_v they_o but_o what_o measure_n do_v those_o messenger_n meet_v with_o the_o same_o with_o those_o servant_n in_o the_o parable_n who_o their_o lord_n send_v to_o the_o husbandman_n to_o receive_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o vineyard_n some_o be_v beat_v some_o wound_a some_o murder_v all_o slight_v and_o disregard_v yet_o to_o evidence_n his_o love_n further_o god_n when_o he_o observe_v how_o unsuccessful_a his_o ambassador_n have_v be_v he_o send_v his_o son_n the_o conclusion_n be_v rational_a they_o will_v reverence_v my_o son_n but_o the_o event_n be_v contrary_a even_o that_o son_n by_o foolish_a husbandman_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o own_o vineyard_n and_o cruel_o murder_v and_o be_v not_o that_o senseless_a barbarism_n too_o much_o be_v it_o not_o too_o much_o to_o affront_v mercy_n so_o notorious_o will_v we_o thus_o requite_v the_o lord_n o_o foolish_a people_n and_o unwise_a that_o we_o be_v ill_n will_v it_o become_v those_o now_o who_o call_v themselves_o christian_n to_o trample_v under_o foot_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n to_o crucify_v to_o themselves_o afresh_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o to_o put_v he_o once_o more_o to_o a_o open_a shame_n do_v he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n from_o glory_n to_o misery_n to_o save_v we_o and_o shall_v we_o be_v so_o much_o fool_n as_o have_v a_o prize_n put_v into_o our_o hand_n not_o to_o have_v heart_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o shall_v we_o refuse_v to_o be_v save_v by_o he_o nay_o shall_v we_o not_o love_v he_o shall_v we_o not_o admire_v he_o shall_v we_o not_o adore_v he_o shall_v we_o not_o obey_v he_o in_o all_o thing_n shall_v we_o not_o be_v ready_a to_o suffer_v all_o that_o hell_n and_o wicked_a man_n can_v invent_v to_o our_o prejudice_n rather_o than_o forsake_v his_o truth_n or_o dishonour_n his_o gospel_n reason_n will_v teach_v we_o these_o thing_n for_o they_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o great_a favour_n aught_o to_o repay_v they_o with_o the_o great_a gratitude_n but_o alas_o we_o general_o discourse_v to_o senseless_a wall_n or_o try_v our_o charm_n on_o deaf_a adder_n for_o who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n and_o to_o who_o be_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n reveal_v the_o leopard_n may_v soon_o change_v his_o spot_n or_o the_o negro_n his_o skin_n than_o those_o who_o be_v enure_v to_o wickedness_n be_v persuade_v to_o relinquish_v it_o by_o the_o most_o cogent_a argument_n in_o the_o world_n but_o how_o base_a and_o ridiculous_a do_v it_o look_v that_o holy_a man_n of_o old_a can_v live_v upon_o god_n promise_n of_o redeem_v they_o that_o in_o confidence_n of_o his_o veracity_n in_o a_o full_a and_o strong_a faith_n in_o his_o goodness_n they_o can_v account_v themselves_o but_o pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n here_o on_o earth_n and_o by_o religious_a life_n and_o
how_o deprave_v by_o the_o jew_n page_n 127_o sadducee_n what_o and_o their_o opinion_n page_n 129_o essenes_n what_o page_n 131_o pharisees_n what_o and_o how_o character_v by_o jew_n page_n 133_o by_o the_o gentile_n page_n 140_o their_o philosopher_n what_o ibid._n thing_n essential_a to_o religion_n unchangeable_a page_n 145_o therefore_o the_o law_n of_o regular_a nature_n neither_o change_v by_o moses_n nor_o our_o saviour_n nor_o any_o thing_n as_o essential_a add_v to_o they_o page_n 148_o and_o therefore_o mystery_n not_o take_v away_o either_o in_o faith_n foundation_n or_o symbolical_a rite_n ibid._n advantage_n of_o religion_n found_v on_o mystery_n 1._o from_o they_o man_n learn_v the_o imperfection_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n page_n 160_o 2._o fundamental_a mysterious_a truth_n the_o distinguish_a character_n between_o several_a religion_n page_n 168_o 3._o mystery_n in_o religion_n create_v a_o due_a reverence_n for_o it_o page_n 177_o the_o conclusion_n from_o all_o that_o mystery_n be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n as_o well_o as_o to_o any_o other_o religion_n page_n 190_o it_o be_v then_o essential_a to_o salvation_n to_o know_v christ_n be_v god_n page_n 193_o scripture_n conclusive_a of_o it_o page_n 201_o ii_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o the_o son_n of_o god_n page_n 209_o this_o prove_v 1._o by_o the_o promise_n and_o prediction_n concern_v his_o birth_n etc._n etc._n page_n 219_o several_a instance_a in_o page_n 221_o etc._n etc._n christ_n expect_v by_o the_o gentile_n page_n 234_o 2._o by_o the_o manner_n and_o circumstance_n of_o his_o birth_n page_n 237_o 3._o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o minister_n page_n 259_o the_o gentle_a and_o peaceful_a yet_o prevail_v nature_n of_o his_o doctrine_n page_n 267_o scripture_n prove_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o deist_n page_n 283_o god_n necessary_o perfect_a in_o all_o his_o attribute_n page_n 287_o his_o love_n in_o particular_a page_n 289_o which_o oblige_v he_o to_o reveal_v his_o will_n to_o those_o intelligent_a creature_n from_o who_o he_o expect_v obedience_n to_o it_o page_n 294_o scripture_n such_o a_o revelation_n of_o his_o will_n and_o have_v all_o requisite_n in_o it_o page_n 299_o iii_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n equal_a with_o his_o father_n page_n 309_o prove_v 1._o by_o the_o old_a testament_n page_n 311_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrew_n occasional_o clear_v page_n 315_o 2._o by_o the_o new_a testament_n page_n 324_o 3._o by_o action_n do_v by_o himself_o in_o person_n or_o in_o his_o name_n page_n 381_o by_o himself_o while_o on_o earth_n ibid._n by_o his_o apostle_n in_o his_o name_n page_n 400_o 4._o by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_n ant_n nicene_n church_n page_n 409_o father_n allege_v greek_a clemens_n romanus_n page_n 411_o ignatius_n antiochenus_fw-la page_n 415_o justine_n martyr_n page_n 420_o irenaeus_n lugdunensis_n page_n 425_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n page_n 427_o origen_n page_n 430_o latin_a tertullian_n page_n 439_o st._n cyprian_n page_n 447_o arnobius_n page_n 452_o lactantius_n page_n 457_o zwicker_n allege_v socinus_n reject_v the_o ant_n nicene_n father_n page_n 462_o why_o the_o father_n suppose_v a_o difference_n between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o god_n the_o son_n page_n 466_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o ante_fw-la nicene_n council_n page_n 470_o the_o judgement_n of_o eusebius_n and_o constantine_n the_o great_a page_n 477_o 5._o by_o the_o general_o allow_v practice_n of_o pray_v to_o our_o saviour_n he_o be_v prove_v true_a god_n page_n 481_o under_o this_o head_n be_v prove_v 1._o that_o all_o worship_n terminate_n on_o any_o but_o the_o one_o true_a god_n be_v idolatry_n page_n 483_o the_o ancient_a notion_n of_o idolatry_n page_n 486_o unitarian_n divide_v about_o worship_v our_o lord_n page_n 496_o their_o vindication_n reflect_v on_o page_n 515_o 2._o that_o christian_n worship_v our_o lord_n be_v no_o idolater_n page_n 518_o therefore_o our_o lord_n be_v true_a god_n page_n 536_o the_o summary_n of_o the_o precedent_a discourse_n ibid._n the_o filiation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n inquire_v into_o page_n 541_o the_o racovian_a lushington_n account_n and_o that_o of_o thought_n on_o sherlock_n etc._n etc._n prove_v insufficient_a page_n 542_o therefore_o a_o necessity_n of_o eternal_a generation_n page_n 550_o iu._n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n the_o son_n shall_v be_v incarnate_a page_n 562_o 1._o that_o he_o may_v destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n page_n 563_o he_o be_v tyrannical_a over_o mankind_n 1._o with_o respect_n to_o their_o body_n page_n 566_o possession_n by_o the_o devil_n not_o bodily_a disease_n page_n 567_o the_o devil_n permit_v to_o possess_v body_n 1._o for_o trial_n of_o faith_n and_o patience_n and_o to_o excite_v the_o great_a long_n for_o a_o messiah_n page_n 573_o 2._o for_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o incarnate_a son_n page_n 577_o 2._o he_o be_v tyrannical_a over_o man_n soul_n corrupt_v they_o 1._o with_o false_a interest_n page_n 583_o 2._o violent_a and_o unreasonable_a prejudices_fw-la page_n 588_o 3._o prodigious_a and_o unaccountable_a laziness_n page_n 592_o a_o second_o reason_n why_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_a 2._o that_o he_o may_v repeal_v the_o mosaic_a law_n by_o a_o just_a authority_n page_n 595_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n though_o divine_a yet_o repealable_a prove_v 1._o by_o its_o general_a import_n it_o be_v whole_o typical_a and_o refer_v to_o somewhat_o future_a page_n 601_o 2._o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v or_o wellbeing_a of_o a_o church_n page_n 610_o 3._o god_n always_o put_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o ceremonial_a and_o the_o moral_a law_n page_n 617_o hence_o necessary_a that_o the_o repealer_n shall_v be_v equal_a with_o the_o first_o maker_n of_o that_o law_n page_n 625_o 3._o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_a that_o in_o our_o nature_n he_o may_v fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n for_o we_o and_o give_v we_o a_o complete_a example_n of_o holiness_n and_o obedience_n page_n 632_o god_n mercy_n not_o diminish_v by_o what_o christ_n merit_v or_o suffer_v on_o our_o behalf_n page_n 639_o crellius_n his_o notion_n of_o infinite_a justice_n consider_v ibid._n justice_n in_o god_n no_o hindrance_n to_o his_o mercy_n and_o vice_n versâ_fw-la page_n 645_o christ_n suffering_n proportionable_a or_o equivalent_a to_o our_o demerit_n necessary_a page_n 646_o satisfaction_n consistent_a with_o free_a remission_n page_n 652_o christ_n not_o necessary_o to_o suffer_v death_n eternal_a his_o temporary_a suffering_n sufficient_a and_o equivalent_a to_o what_o be_v our_o due_n page_n 658_o why_o so_o much_o of_o christ_n blood_n shed_v as_o to_o procure_v his_o death_n page_n 666_o our_o lord_n satisfaction_n no_o encouragement_n to_o sinner_n page_n 668_o but_o a_o great_a encouragement_n and_o obligation_n to_o holiness_n than_o the_o socinian_n hypothesis_n page_n 674_o confess_v by_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o unitarian_n page_n 676_o christ_n a_o real_a and_o effectual_a sacrifice_n for_o we_o page_n 688_o christ_n obedience_n in_o his_o exinanition_n not_o necessary_a but_o on_o our_o account_n page_n 707_o his_o sacrifice_n expiatory_a page_n 722_o complete_v before_o his_o ascension_n page_n 724_o his_o die_a for_o our_o sin_n prove_v positive_o page_n 731_o from_o the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o death_n page_n 738_o otherwise_o his_o inferior_a to_o the_o suffering_n of_o martyr_n page_n 739_o god_n the_o son_n therefore_o necessary_o the_o world_n redeemer_n because_o that_o redemption_n be_v 1._o a_o effect_n of_o the_o great_a and_o divine_a love_n page_n 758_o 2._o it_o require_v the_o great_a interest_n in_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o great_a tenderness_n towards_o mankind_n page_n 761_o 3._o he_o who_o make_v all_o thing_n be_v fit_a to_o restore_v they_o page_n 767_o the_o image_n of_o god_n not_o found_v in_o dominion_n of_o man_n over_o his_o fellow_n creature_n page_n 768_o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o in_o two_o practical_a inference_n 1._o we_o learn_v from_o the_o whole_a to_o admire_v god_n wonderful_a love_n and_o compassion_n in_o condescend_v so_o far_o to_o we_o as_o to_o be_v incarnate_a and_o to_o die_v for_o we_o page_n 772_o 2._o we_o ought_v to_o adhere_v constant_o to_o that_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n to_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n true_a god_n himself_o and_o the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n page_n 778_o place_n of_o scripture_n more_o particular_o explain_v and_o vindicated_n genesis_n 3.1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o cain_n and_o abel_n sacrifice_n page_n 98_o 3.15_o i_o will_v put_v enmity_n between_o thou_o and_o the_o woman_n page_n 607_o 18.2_o abraham_n stand_v still_o before_o the_o lord_n page_n 311_o 32.28_o jacob_n wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n call_v israel_n page_n 313_o 49.10_o the_o sceptre_n
shall_v not_o depart_v from_o judah_n page_n 241_o exod._n 4.16_o moses_n a_o god_n to_o pharaoh_n and_o aaron_n his_o prophet_n page_n 343_o 7.1_o moses_n a_o god_n to_o pharaoh_n and_o aaron_n his_o prophet_n page_n 343_o 14.21_o they_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o his_o servant_n moses_n page_n 329_o 25.22_o the_o propitiatory_a or_o mercy-seat_n page_n 721_o 34.7_o forgive_a iniquity_n transgression_n and_o sin_n page_n 699_o levit._fw-la 16.12_o 13._o censer_n of_o burn_a coal_n in_o the_o holy_a place_n page_n 726_o v._o 16._o to_o make_v a_o atonement_n for_o the_o most_o holy_a place_n page_n 725_o 2_o king_n 3.26_o 27._o king_n of_o moab_n offer_v his_o son_n page_n 105_o 2_o chron._n 30.18_o 19_o 20._o hezekiah_n prayer_n for_o the_o unprepared_a page_n 603_o psalm_n 40.6_o 7_o 8._o sacrifice_n and_o burnt-offering_n not_o desire_v page_n 225_o 45.2_o thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o page_n 314_o 82.6_o 7._o i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v go_n page_n 342_o isaiah_n 9.6_o unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v a_o son_n be_v give_v page_n 320_o jeremiah_n 23.5_o 6._o i_o will_v raise_v unto_o david_n a_o righteous_a branch_n page_n 321_o micah_n 5.2_o thou_o bethlehem_n ephrata_n etc._n etc._n page_n 323_o haggai_n 2.8_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o second_o house_n great_a etc._n etc._n page_n 753_o matth._n 1.23_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n emanuel_n page_n 325_o 18.23_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o debtor_n to_o their_o lord_n page_n 651_o 28.18_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n page_n 407_o v._o 19_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n page_n 328_o luke_n 4.29_o 30._o they_o lead_v he_o to_o the_o brow_n of_o the_o hill_n page_n 382_o 24.45_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n page_n 395_o john_n 1.1_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n page_n 332_o 3.13_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n page_n 337_o 5.23_o the_o father_n have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n page_n 202_o 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one._n page_n 354_o 10.34_o 35_o 36._o be_v it_o not_o write_v in_o your_o law_n page_n 558_o 17_o 21._o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o etc._n etc._n page_n 358_o 20.28_o my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n page_n 360_o act_n 7.59_o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n page_n 524_o rom._n 2.6_o god_n will_v render_v to_o every_o man_n etc._n etc._n page_n 124_o 3.24_o 25_o 26._o justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n etc._n etc._n page_n 649_o 703_o 8.19_o 20_o 21_o 22._o the_o earnest_a expectation_n of_o the_o creature_n page_n 490_o 9.5_o of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v page_n 370_o 10.13_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n page_n 203_o 1_o cor._n 1.14_o 15._o lest_o any_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v baptize_v in_o my_o own_o etc._n etc._n page_n 402_o 10.2_o all_o be_v baptize_v into_o moses_n etc._n etc._n page_n 329_o 15.3_o christ_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n page_n 693_o 2_o cor._n 5.19_o 20._o reconcile_a the_o world_n etc._n etc._n page_n 648_o 719_o 12.7_o 8_o 9_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o beseech_v the_o lord_n thrice_o page_n 527_o gal._n 3.19_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o mediator_n page_n 711_o philip._n 2.5_o 11._o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n page_n 374_o col._n 1.24_o what_o be_v behind_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n page_n 694_o 1_o thess_n 5.17_o pray_v without_o cease_v page_n 505_o heb._n 1.8_o 9_o 10._o etc._n etc._n when_o he_o bring_v his_o first-begotten_a etc._n etc._n page_n 314_o 5.5_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o page_n 549_o 6.1_o 2._o leave_v the_o principle_n etc._n etc._n page_n 184_o 8.4_o if_o on_o earth_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o priest_n etc._n etc._n page_n 733_o c._n 9_o etc._n etc._n 10._o page_n 689_o 727_o 728._o 11.1_o faith_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o etc._n etc._n page_n 87_o 1_o pet._n 2.24_o bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o body_n on_o the_o cross_n page_n 698._o 3.18_o he_o suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a page_n 697_o 1_o john_n 2.1_o 2._o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n page_n 719_o 5.7_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n page_n 458_o v._o 20._o this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n page_n 205_o errata_fw-la page_n 3._o l._n 5._o after_o salvation_n deal_n p._n 5._o l._n 20._o put_v a_o period_n after_o text._n l._n 30._o after_o attentatam_fw-la d._n ●_o p._n 6._o l._n 3._o r._n wissowatius_fw-la p._n 130._o in_o the_o margin_n r._n serrarii_fw-la p._n 142._o l._n 19_o r._n seem_v p._n 148._o l._n 31._o r._n posterity_n p._n 200._o l._n 14_o r._n one_o p._n 209._o l._n 26._o r._n real_o and_o indeed_o p._n 221._o l._n 7._o r._n paradisiacum_n p._n 239._o r._n this_o p._n 139._o l._n 21._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 149._o l._n 21._o d._n and._n p._n 289._o l._n 29._o r._n those_o p._n 312._o l._n 3._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o margin_n r._n sandii_n hist_o eccles_n enucl_n p._n 318._o l._n 6._o r._n for_o p._n 332._o l._n 16._o r._n those_o p._n 336._o l._n 25._o r._n stranger_n p._n 364._o l._n 29._o r._n at_o p._n 413._o l._n 21._o r._n far_o p._n 448._o l._n 20._o r._n library_n p._n 467._o l._n 22._o r._n separation_n p._n 492._o l._n 26._o d._n one_o p._n 511._o l._n 10._o r._n deliver_v p._n 539._o l._n 3._o r._n lazarus_n p._n 552._o l._n 31._o in_o marg._n r._n epistolarum_n p._n 602._o l._n 12._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 609._o l._n 13._o r._n sacrifice_n p._n 666._o l._n 1._o he_o be_v p._n 690._o l._n 29._o r._n levitical_a p._n 700._o in_o marg._n r._n brixian_n l._n 3._o r._n cure_v p._n 704._o l._n 31._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 720._o l._n 11._o r._n catiline_n p._n 752._o l._n 10._o r._n administrator_n several_n small_a mistake_v especial_o in_o the_o point_v the_o reader_n will_v easy_o observe_v and_o pass_v by_o or_o correct_v as_o fit_v book_n print_v for_o walter_n kettilby_n at_o the_o bishop's-head_n in_o st._n paul_n churchyard_n ten_o sermon_n with_o two_o discourse_n of_o conscience_n by_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o york_n 4_o to_o be_v sermon_n before_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n nou._n 5._o 1691._o be_v sermon_n before_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n on_o christmass-day_n 1691._o be_v sermon_n before_o the_o queen_n on_o easter-day_n 1692._o henrici_fw-la mori_n d._n d._n opera_fw-la omne_fw-la bishop_n overal_n convocation-book_n 1606._o concern_v the_o government_n of_o god_n catholic_n church_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 4_o to_o dr_n falkner_n libertas_n ecclesiastica_fw-la 8_o vo_z be_v vindication_n of_o liturgy_n ibid._n his_o christian_a loyalty_n ibid._n mr._n lamb_n fresh_a suit_n against_o independency_n ibid._n mr._n w._n allen_n tract_n ibid._n bishop_n fowler_n be_v libertas_n evangelica_n ib._n jovian_a or_o a_o answer_n to_o julian_n the_o apostate_n ibid._n animadversion_n on_o mr._n johnson_n answer_n to_o jovian_a in_o three_o letter_n to_o a_o country_n friend_n ibid._n turner_n de_fw-fr angelorum_fw-la &_o hominum_fw-la lapsu_fw-la 4_o to_o mr._n raymond_n pattern_n of_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a religion_n 8_o vo_z be_v exposition_n on_o the_o church-catechism_n ibid._n mr._n lamb_n dialogue_n between_o a_o minister_n and_o his_o parishioner_n about_o the_o lord_n supper_n ibid._n be_v sermon_n before_o the_o king_n at_o windsor_n be_v sermon_n before_o the_o lord_n mayor_n be_v liberty_n of_o humane_a nature_n state_v discuss_v and_o limit_v be_v sermon_n before_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n jan._n 19_o 1689._o be_v sermon_n before_o the_o queen_n jan._n 24._o 1690._o dr_n hickman_n thanksgiving-sermon_n before_o the_o honourable_a house_n of_o commons_o oct._n 19_o 1690._o be_v sermon_n before_o the_o queen_n at_o whitehall_n oct._n 26._o 1690._o dr_n burnet_n theory_n of_o the_o earth_n 2_o vol._n folio_n be_v answer_n to_o mr._n warren_n exception_n against_o the_o theory_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v consideration_n of_o mr._n warren_n defence_n be_v telluris_fw-la theoria_fw-la sacra_fw-la 2_o vol._n 4_o to_o bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n reflection_n on_o a_o french_a testament_n print_v at_o bourdeaux_n his_o christian_a sufferer_n support_v 8_o vo_z dr_n grove_n now_o lord_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n his_o sermon_n before_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n june_n 1._o 1690._o dr_n hooper_n sermon_n before_o the_o queen_n jan._n 24._o 1690_o 1._o dr_n pelling_n sermon_n before_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n dec._n 8._o 1689._o be_v vindication_n of_o those_o that_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n 4_o to_z dr_n worthington_n of_o resignation_n 8_o vo_z be_v christian_a love_n ibid._n religion_n the_o perfection_n of_o man_n by_o mr._n jeffery_n ibid._n faith_n and_o practice_n of_o a_o church_n of_o england_n man_n 12_o the_o four_o edition_n kelsey_n concio_fw-la de_fw-la aeterno_fw-la christi_fw-la sacerdot_n be_v sermon_n of_o christ_n crucify_a aug._n 23._o 1691._o mr._n milbourn_n sermon_n jan._n 30._o 1682._o be_v sermon_n sept._n 9_o 1683._o a_o answer_n to_o a_o heretical_a book_n call_v the_o naked_a gospel_n which_o be_v condemn_v and_o order_v to_o be_v public_o burn_v by_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n aug._n 19_o 1690._o with_o some_o reflection_n on_o dr_n bury_n new_a edition_n of_o that_o book_n to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o short_a history_n of_o socinianism_n by_o w._n nichols_n m._n a._n etc._n etc._n two_o letter_n of_o advice_n i._o for_o the_o susception_n of_o holy_a order_n ii_o for_o study_n theological_a especial_o such_o as_o be_v rational_a at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o former_a be_v insert_v a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o christian_a writer_n and_o genuine_a work_n that_o be_v extant_a of_o the_o first_o three_o century_n by_o henry_n dodwell_n m._n a._n etc._n etc._n
child_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v and_o the_o government_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n that_o this_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o come_v have_v never_o that_o i_o know_v of_o be_v doubt_v and_o it_o have_v be_v as_o universal_o apply_v to_o the_o bless_a jesus_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o mighty_a god_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v god_n will_v appear_v very_o strange_a the_o title_n of_o god_n be_v we_o know_v very_o well_o apply_v in_o scripture_n to_o angel_n to_o prince_n to_o those_o to_o who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v send_v but_o none_o of_o these_o ever_o wear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o mighty_a god_n the_o mighty_a god_n here_o be_v emphatical_a and_o equivalent_a to_o the_o almighty_a and_o the_o only_a god_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o less_o doubtful_a of_o his_o meaning_n the_o same_o son_n who_o be_v call_v the_o mighty_a god_n be_v call_v the_o everlasting_a father_n or_o the_o father_n of_o eternity_n the_o father_n be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o author_n or_o commander_n of_o eternity_n which_o can_v not_o without_o absurdity_n be_v apply_v to_o he_o who_o once_o be_v not_o or_o have_v no_o be_v himself_o the_o chaldee_n paraphra_v call_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o messiah_n live_v to_o eternity_n the_o name_n indeed_o be_v very_o proper_a to_o god_n the_o father_n nor_o can_v it_o with_o any_o probability_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o son_n do_v not_o our_o saviour_n himself_o solve_v the_o difficulty_n effectual_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o 10.30_o job_n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o if_o they_o be_v one_o the_o same_o epithet_n belong_v to_o both_o and_o yet_o that_o we_o may_v the_o less_o doubt_n to_o who_o the_o whole_a text_n belong_v 7.2_o ephes_n 2.14_o 2_o thess_n 3.16_o heb._n 7.2_o this_o mighty_a god_n and_o everlasting_a father_n be_v style_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n so_o the_o bless_a jesus_n be_v say_v to_o be_v our_o peace_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o just_a successor_n of_o that_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n melchizedech_n who_o be_v king_n of_o righteousness_n and_o king_n of_o peace_n again_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n in_o that_o plain_a prophecy_n of_o his_o concern_v the_o certain_a advent_n of_o the_o messiah_n teach_v we_o thus_o 6._o jer._n 23.5_o 6._o behold_v the_o day_n shall_v come_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o i_o will_v raise_v unto_o david_n a_o righteous_a branch_n and_o this_o be_v the_o name_n whereby_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o name_n there_o too_o be_v apply_v to_o he_o which_o belong_v to_o none_o but_o to_o the_o supreme_a god_n it_o be_v the_o name_n as_o ben_n maimon_n assure_v we_o which_o signify_v the_o divine_a essence_n pure_o by_o its_o self_n without_o any_o respect_n to_o the_o creature_n now_o that_o the_o divine_a essence_n itself_o shall_v be_v attribute_v to_o a_o mere_a man_n be_v downright_a blasphemy_n but_o here_o it_o be_v attribute_v to_o that_o branch_n promise_v to_o david_n which_o all_o the_o ancient_a rabbin_n and_o the_o elder_a father_n of_o the_o church_n interpret_v of_o the_o messiah_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n every_o one_o who_o receive_v the_o gospel_n must_v acknowledge_v therefore_o jesus_n the_o messiah_n be_v god_n and_o so_o the_o lord_n our_o righteousness_n if_o we_o far_o compare_v this_o with_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n sure_o shall_v one_o say_v in_o the_o lord_n have_v i_o righteousness_n and_o strength_n in_o the_o lord_n shall_v all_o the_o seed_n of_o israel_n be_v justify_v and_o shall_v glory_v 1.30_o isai_n 45.24_o 25._o 1_o cor._n 1.30_o and_o that_o again_o with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n christ_n jesus_n be_v make_v of_o god_n unto_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n we_o shall_v find_v somewhat_o more_o attribute_v to_o christ_n than_o lie_v within_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a mere_a man_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o can_v be_v in_o the_o world_n israel_n be_v to_o be_v save_v man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o now_o let_v a_o man_n be_v never_o so_o pure_a never_o so_o innocent_a if_o he_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a man_n his_o righteousness_n and_o innocence_n be_v nor_o can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o may_v serve_v his_o own_o necessity_n it_o be_v what_o god_n require_v at_o every_o one_o of_o our_o hand_n it_o be_v true_a for_o ten_o righteous_a man_n god_n will_v have_v spare_v sodom_n but_o that_o be_v only_o temporal_o god_n judgement_n may_v have_v be_v defer_v for_o a_o while_n and_o yet_o the_o sodomite_n have_v be_v damn_v at_o last_o but_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v meritorious_a and_o available_a on_o our_o account_n he_o be_v our_o righteousness_n and_o consequent_o by_o he_o and_o upon_o his_o account_n we_o be_v justify_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n of_o sin_n our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v through_o his_o merit_n and_o for_o his_o sake_n and_o we_o instead_o of_o damnation_n be_v make_v inheritor_n with_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o who_o be_v forbid_v to_o glory_n in_o man_n or_o in_o any_o child_n of_o man_n 31._o v._o 31._o because_o there_o be_v no_o help_n in_o they_o be_v allow_v and_o encourage_v to_o glory_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o well_o we_o may_v since_o he_o may_v be_v and_o be_v our_o righteousness_n therefore_o he_o who_o we_o be_v allow_v to_o glory_n in_o must_v be_v more_o than_o man_n but_o he_o be_v no_o angel_n therefore_o he_o must_v be_v god_n the_o last_o place_n i_o shall_v insist_v on_o be_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n micah_n 5.2_o micah_n 5.2_o but_o thou_o bethlehem_n ephrata_n though_o thou_o be_v little_a among_o the_o thousand_o of_o judah_n yet_o out_o of_o thou_o shall_v he_o come_v forth_o to_o i_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ruler_n in_o israel_n who_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v from_o of_o old_a from_o everlasting_a that_o this_o text_n refer_v to_o the_o messiah_n we_o be_v put_v beyond_o doubt_n by_o that_o of_o the_o evangelist_n where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o herod_n have_v demand_v of_o the_o jewish_a chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n where_o christ_n shall_v he_o bear_v they_o present_o answer_v he_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o bethlehem_n of_o judaea_n 6._o math._n 2.4_o 5_o 6._o and_o bring_v this_o text_n to_o prove_v their_o assertion_n the_o application_n then_o be_v certain_a we_o may_v observe_v how_o direct_o this_o text_n contradict_v the_o arrian_n and_o socinian_n position_n they_o say_v there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o prophet_n say_v his_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v from_o of_o old_a from_o everlasting_a or_o as_o the_o septuagint_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o go_n out_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n if_o his_o go_n forth_o be_v from_o eternity_n he_o himself_o be_v from_o eternity_n too_o if_o from_o eternity_n there_o be_v then_o no_o time_n wherein_o he_o be_v not_o therefore_o he_o be_v god_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o which_o eternity_n can_v be_v true_o attribute_v but_o god_n or_o if_o we_o shall_v with_o some_o learned_a man_n translate_v the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o east_n our_o interpretation_n will_v not_o suffer_v at_o all_o it_o will_v then_o be_v his_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v from_o the_o east_n from_o the_o day_n of_o old_a therefore_o he_o be_v or_o have_v a_o be_v before_o the_o date_n of_o this_o prophecy_n therefore_o he_o have_v a_o be_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n therefore_o he_o be_v eternal_a therefore_o he_o be_v god_n i_o may_v have_v urge_v more_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o these_o may_v suffice_v to_o evidence_n that_o that_o messiah_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n speak_v be_v believe_v by_o they_o to_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n their_o prophecy_n indeed_o be_v by_o that_o mean_v the_o more_o obscure_a and_o unintelligible_a to_o the_o jew_n who_o see_v christ_n frequent_o but_o they_o see_v only_o his_o humane_a nature_n they_o understand_v no_o more_o of_o he_o nor_o do_v they_o then_o expect_v their_o messiah_n shall_v be_v god_n but_o only_o some_o great_a man_n which_o they_o see_v the_o bless_a jesus_n as_o to_o his_o outward_a appearance_n be_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o pick_v a_o quarrel_n with_o he_o as_o guilty_a of_o blasphemy_n 10.33_o joh._n 10.33_o because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n make_v himself_o god_n we_o come_v to_o
obedience_n uninterrupted_a and_o universal_a at_o least_o it_o must_v be_v say_v he_o be_v very_o unkind_a for_o he_o who_o can_v forgive_v and_o as_o socinus_n assert_n do_v forgive_v all_o our_o sin_n without_o any_o satisfaction_n tender_v to_o his_o justice_n may_v as_o well_o forgive_v we_o without_o put_v we_o to_o the_o trouble_n of_o inform_v our_o mind_n or_o regulate_v and_o restrain_v our_o action_n for_o we_o can_v easy_o give_v any_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v exact_v such_o duty_n of_o we_o as_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n when_o if_o it_o please_v he_o he_o can_v give_v we_o salvation_n without_o any_o condition_n at_o all_o if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o he_o have_v declare_v otherwise_o in_o his_o reveal_v will_n and_o its_o justice_n in_o he_o to_o be_v true_a to_o his_o own_o declaration_n that_o plea_n again_o reduce_v all_o to_o perfect_a arbitrariness_n and_o he_o will_v be_v irrespective_o merciful_a mere_o because_o he_o will_v be_v merciful_a and_o he_o will_v be_v irrespective_o vindictive_a mere_o because_o he_o will_v be_v so_o which_o thing_n seem_v somewhat_o to_o contradict_v our_o common_a notion_n of_o justice_n that_o it_o do_v suum_fw-la cuique_fw-la tribuere_fw-la give_v to_o every_o one_o what_o be_v due_a and_o proper_a to_o he_o we_o believe_v more_o safe_o that_o god_n lay_v those_o duty_n which_o yet_o we_o be_v unable_a to_o perform_v in_o that_o perfect_a manner_n we_o ought_v upon_o we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v as_o continual_a remembrancer_n to_o we_o of_o that_o satisfaction_n which_o he_o real_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n for_o can_v we_o perform_v all_o god_n reveal_v will_n without_o any_o failure_n either_o in_o time_n or_o circumstance_n god_n justice_n will_v be_v otherwise_o satisfy_v and_o employ_v whole_o in_o distribute_v reward_n among_o we_o but_o since_o when_o we_o take_v the_o utmost_a pain_n our_o duty_n be_v either_o at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o essential_o or_o circumstantial_o sinful_a therefore_o we_o ourselves_o ought_v to_o conclude_v some_o such_o satisfaction_n necessary_a as_o may_v make_v up_o for_o our_o unavoidable_a defect_n and_o since_o we_o be_v assure_v by_o god_n word_n that_o one_o have_v undertake_v that_o work_n who_o be_v every_o way_n capable_a of_o perform_v it_o we_o be_v oblige_v in_o gratitude_n to_o so_o great_a a_o benefactor_n to_o endeavour_v after_o all_o that_o holiness_n and_o perfection_n how_o little_a soever_o it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v capable_a of_o and_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v it_o for_o our_o own_o sake_n because_o it_o be_v no_o way_n reasonable_a those_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o any_o benefit_n from_o christ_n satisfaction_n who_o do_v not_o perform_v those_o condition_n upon_o which_o only_o that_o satisfaction_n can_v be_v any_o way_n beneficial_a to_o we_o to_o this_o we_o may_v add_v yet_o further_o that_o if_o god_n can_v forgive_v sinner_n without_o satisfaction_n make_v for_o their_o sin_n without_o any_o derogation_n from_o his_o justice_n how_o merciful_a soever_o god_n may_v seem_v to_o mankind_n yet_o he_o seem_v whole_o to_o have_v forget_v all_o that_o mercy_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o fall_v angel_n for_o if_o no_o satisfaction_n be_v needful_a for_o sin_n why_o can_v not_o their_o maker_n forgive_v their_o transgression_n too_o without_o it_o as_o well_o as_o man_n there_o may_v have_v be_v a_o thousand_o mean_n doubtless_o find_v out_o to_o confirm_v a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o they_o as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o covenant_n with_o man_n but_o it_o seem_v god_n will_v not_o so_o forgive_v they_o though_o he_o can_v they_o can_v offer_v no_o satisfaction_n for_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o be_v eternal_o and_o immediate_o damn_v these_o conclusion_n be_v necessary_a and_o inevitable_a from_o socinian_n principle_n but_o in_o themselves_o be_v detestable_a and_o damnable_a but_o what_o the_o socinian_o fail_v to_o effect_v by_o god_n word_n they_o make_v no_o doubt_n of_o make_v good_a by_o dint_n of_o reason_n in_o which_o they_o look_v upon_o themselves_o as_o whole_o invincible_a here_o than_o they_o assert_v that_o if_o christ_n have_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o we_o and_o that_o suitable_a to_o our_o necessity_n than_o christ_n must_v have_v suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o eternal_a death_n because_o mankind_n by_o sin_n be_v liable_a to_o such_o eternal_a death_n but_o here_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o they_o fasten_v upon_o that_o single_a instance_n of_o christ_n suffering_n viz._n his_o death_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o satisfaction_n for_o sinner_n only_o whereas_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o continual_a sufferer_n on_o that_o account_n from_o his_o first_o condescension_n to_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o to_o his_o crucifixion_n and_o i_o make_v no_o question_n but_o what_o he_o undergo_v when_o he_o bear_v humane_a infirmity_n when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o bitter_a agony_n in_o the_o garden_n when_o he_o cry_v out_o upon_o the_o cross_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o i_o make_v no_o question_n but_o his_o suffering_n in_o those_o instance_n be_v much_o great_a than_o what_o he_o undergo_v in_o death_n itself_o and_o so_o the_o very_a story_n of_o his_o passion_n represent_v thing_n in_o relation_n to_o those_o latter_a scene_n of_o his_o life_n on_o earth_n for_o what_o prodigious_a cause_n must_v we_o imagine_v there_o be_v that_o he_o declare_v to_o peter_n and_o the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n 26.38_o matth._n 26.38_o my_o soul_n be_v exceed_o sorrowful_a even_o unto_o death_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d my_o soul_n be_v compass_v round_o about_o or_o even_o overwhelm_v with_o sorrow_n for_o so_o the_o original_a import_v in_o his_o agony_n in_o the_o garden_n what_o through_o a_o clear_a apprehension_n of_o that_o dreadful_a task_n he_o be_v then_o to_o set_v about_o more_o immediate_o what_o with_o the_o fervour_n and_o earnestness_n of_o his_o prayer_n to_o his_o father_n either_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o cup_n that_o bitter_a cup_n he_o be_v then_o to_o drink_v may_v pass_v from_o he_o or_o that_o what_o he_o be_v then_o suffering_n may_v be_v true_o effectual_a to_o that_o great_a end_n for_o which_o he_o suffer_v 22.44_o luke_n 22.44_o his_o sweat_n be_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v great_a drop_n of_o blood_n fall_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n the_o terror_n of_o his_o instant_a suffering_n to_o that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o have_v assume_v as_o well_o as_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o conflict_n he_o be_v then_o engage_v in_o may_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o that_o stupendous_a sweat_n for_o experience_n tell_v we_o that_o fear_n open_v the_o pore_n of_o the_o body_n and_o emit_v as_o grumou_n sweat_v as_o the_o most_o earnest_a intention_n whatsoever_o of_o the_o body_n or_o the_o mind_n and_o the_o angel_n appear_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o garden_n and_o strengthen_v he_o seem_v more_o necessary_a with_o respect_n to_o those_o terror_n ready_a to_o seize_v on_o flesh_n and_o blood_n engage_v in_o mighty_a sorrow_n and_o oppress_a woe_n than_o mere_o to_o reinforce_v that_o earnestness_n in_o prayer_n which_o the_o great_a the_o danger_n be_v so_o long_o as_o the_o soul_n be_v consistent_a with_o itself_o will_v natural_o be_v the_o more_o earnest_a and_o importunate_a for_o assistance_n or_o deliverance_n his_o suffering_n yet_o seem_v to_o work_v more_o violent_o upon_o he_o when_o he_o come_v to_o that_o bitter_a cry_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o why_o do_v thou_o seem_v to_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o and_o to_o leave_v i_o whole_o to_o the_o barbarous_a cruelty_n of_o wicked_a and_o malicious_a man_n the_o complaint_n be_v more_o natural_a and_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o great_a emphasis_n when_o proceed_v from_o that_o son_n of_o god_n that_o only_o that_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v so_o far_o his_o holy_a soul_n seem_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o rack_n but_o when_o he_o receive_v his_o last_o bitter_a draught_n and_o own_v the_o mighty_a work_n as_o well_o as_o the_o type_n and_o prediction_n relate_v to_o he_o be_v finish_v the_o storm_n that_o ruffle_a he_o before_o seem_v to_o sink_v into_o a_o calm_a and_o he_o breathe_v out_o his_o sacred_a life_n with_o those_o charm_a eruption_n of_o unbounded_a love_n father_n forgive_v they_o 23.34_o luke_n 23.34_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v and_o those_o full_a expression_n of_o absolute_a satisfaction_n in_o what_o he_o have_v undergo_v father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n 46._o v._o 46._o our_o lord_n suffering_n end_v there_o and_o there_o with_o his_o die_a breath_n he_o raise_v to_o himself_o the_o first_o trophy_n of_o his_o glorious_a victory_n for_o though_o
the_o bring_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o death_n who_o have_v so_o terrible_o overawe_v and_o baffle_v he_o before_o be_v the_o utmost_a reach_n of_o hell_n impetuous_a malice_n yet_o that_o very_a death_n of_o he_o give_v the_o infernal_a tyrant_n that_o fatal_a blow_n which_o he_o strive_v by_o that_o very_a prosecution_n to_o put_v off_o that_o mighty_a wound_n which_o hell_n with_o all_o its_o stratagem_n and_o struggle_n can_v never_o recover_v and_o this_o great_a event_n the_o vanish_v of_o that_o thick_a darkness_n at_o that_o very_a instant_a of_o his_o expiration_n which_o before_o when_o nature_n lord_n be_v in_o his_o agony_n cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n the_o terrible_a convulsion_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o dissolution_n of_o mighty_a rock_n the_o rend_v of_o the_o temple_n vail_v and_o long_o bury_v saint_n start_v from_o their_o grave_n as_o if_o at_o that_o very_a instant_a of_o their_o saviour_n death_n all_o the_o chain_n of_o that_o king_n of_o terror_n have_v be_v break_v at_o once_o with_o that_o great_a event_n all_o these_o mighty_a wonder_n seem_v to_o sympathize_v now_o if_o with_o these_o great_a and_o more_o inexpressible_a suffering_n we_o consider_v all_o the_o rest_n which_o our_o saviour_n life_n be_v obnoxious_a to_o from_o his_o cradle_n to_o his_o tomb_n and_o withal_o reflect_v with_o due_a reverence_n upon_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o sufferer_n the_o distance_n may_v not_o seem_v so_o immoderate_o great_a as_o the_o socinian_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v between_o the_o satisfaction_n give_v and_o the_o necessity_n of_o those_o it_o be_v give_v for_o but_o further_a we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o eternity_n of_o that_o death_n adam_n sin_n have_v lay_v he_o open_a to_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sin_n itself_o for_o no_o crime_n infinite_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n can_v proceed_v from_o a_o finite_a be_v but_o the_o eternity_n of_o that_o penalty_n annex_v to_o sin_n in_o man_n arise_v from_o the_o absolute_a infinity_o of_o that_o god_n against_o who_o he_o sin_v and_o who_o anger_n when_o irreversible_a must_v be_v eternal_a from_o a_o respect_n to_o that_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o justice_n essential_a to_o he_o whereby_o he_o have_v confer_v such_o mighty_a benefit_n upon_o man_n and_o lay_v so_o very_o reasonable_a duty_n upon_o he_o which_o yet_o man_n have_v ingrateful_o slight_v and_o abuse_v now_o if_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o penalty_n arise_v from_o the_o greatness_n or_o immensity_n of_o the_o be_v offend_v than_o the_o greatness_n and_o value_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n tender_v in_o lieu_n of_o that_o penalty_n arise_v from_o the_o same_o consideration_n viz._n the_o greatness_n of_o that_o god_n it_o be_v offer_v to_o and_o accept_v by_o and_o as_o we_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v infinite_o wise_a and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v impose_v upon_o so_o as_o with_o glaucus_n in_o the_o poet_n to_o exchange_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thing_n of_o the_o great_a consideration_n for_o trifle_n gold_n for_o brass_n so_o we_o reasonable_o conclude_v that_o god_n understand_v the_o true_a value_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n offer_v to_o justice_n in_o the_o suffering_n of_o his_o son_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o have_v accept_v of_o what_o his_o son_n have_v do_v on_o our_o behalf_n therefore_o we_o be_v assure_v too_o that_o what_o he_o have_v so_o act_v for_o we_o be_v and_o be_v equivalent_a to_o those_o punishment_n we_o ought_v as_o sinner_n to_o have_v undergo_v for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o eternal_a justice_n our_o adversary_n indeed_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o if_o we_o insist_v so_o much_o on_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n suffer_v we_o must_v suppose_v that_o christ_n suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o in_o his_o divine_a nature_n which_o supposition_n will_v be_v blasphemous_a and_o the_o conclusion_n impossible_a but_o by_o their_o leave_n we_o neither_o mean_v nor_o pretend_v to_o any_o such_o thing_n we_o know_v and_o assert_v that_o immortality_n can_v die_v and_o that_o the_o deity_n can_v suffer_v yet_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o who_o be_v and_o be_v true_a god_n do_v both_o suffer_v and_o die_v but_o we_o know_v he_o that_o be_v god_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o though_o he_o can_v not_o nor_o do_v die_v as_o god_n yet_o that_o humane_a nature_n which_o he_o assume_v both_o can_v and_o do_v suffer_v and_o die_v and_o by_o that_o suffer_a and_o death_n among_o other_o proof_n evidence_v the_o reality_n of_o his_o be_v man_n as_o well_o as_o he_o demonstrate_v his_o divinity_n by_o his_o continual_a word_n and_o action_n but_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v god_n condescend_v to_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o nature_n that_o very_a condescension_n alone_o be_v of_o infinite_a weight_n we_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o very_a meritorious_a piece_n of_o humility_n for_o a_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o beggar_n only_o to_o procure_v good_a for_o some_o miserable_a undeserving_a wretch_n the_o athenian_n therefore_o long_o celebrate_v the_o glorious_a memory_n of_o their_o last_o monarch_n codrus_n who_o put_v on_o the_o ignoble_a arm_n of_o a_o private_a centinel_n mere_o that_o he_o may_v die_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o enemy_n who_o have_v be_v forewarn_v by_o a_o oracle_n not_o to_o kill_v he_o by_o which_o private_a habit_n assume_v he_o procure_v the_o safety_n of_o his_o country_n but_o we_o never_o admire_v much_o the_o humility_n or_o condescension_n of_o that_o beggar_n who_o wear_v rag_n because_o he_o have_v no_o rich_a habit_n to_o put_v on_o now_o have_v the_o son_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o he_o a_o royal_a grandeur_n have_v he_o be_v wrap_v in_o purple_a adore_v by_o all_o mankind_n in_o his_o cradle_n wear_v the_o imperial_a crown_n even_o in_o his_o infancy_n or_o have_v he_o take_v any_o other_o method_n we_o can_v fancy_v to_o ourselves_o which_o may_v have_v render_v he_o considerable_a to_o the_o world_n yet_o this_o have_v be_v a_o infinite_o great_a humiliation_n than_o for_o a_o cyrus_n or_o a_o alexander_n or_o a_o trajan_n or_o a_o constantine_n or_o a_o tamerlane_n to_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o the_o most_o contemptible_a wretch_n in_o the_o world_n and_o for_o the_o noble_a end_n it_o can_v well_o be_v question_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o god_n to_o take_v into_o his_o own_o a_o humane_a nature_n or_o not_o humanity_n itself_o be_v the_o product_n of_o his_o own_o eternal_a power_n be_v as_o all_o other_o part_n of_o the_o creation_n whole_o at_o his_o command_n and_o though_o god_n assume_v a_o body_n may_v be_v suppose_v enough_o of_o itself_o to_o render_v that_o body_n immortal_a yet_o we_o may_v reasonable_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o can_v make_v it_o according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n liable_a to_o death_n as_o well_o as_o other_o humane_a body_n be_v but_o the_o union_n between_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n be_v so_o close_o and_o absolute_a the_o humane_a nature_n howsoever_o submit_v to_o mortality_n must_v contract_v a_o infinite_a honour_n and_o dignity_n from_o thence_o but_o after_o all_o the_o condescension_n be_v not_o a_o whit_n the_o less_o that_o he_o who_o be_v god_n shall_v assume_v that_o mortal_a nature_n nor_o be_v his_o love_n less_o admirable_a who_o shall_v assume_v it_o for_o our_o sake_n or_o who_o shall_v stoop_v so_o low_o pure_o to_o make_v up_o that_o breach_n that_o be_v between_o his_o father_n and_o mankind_n but_o if_o to_o this_o condescension_n we_o add_v a_o due_a consideration_n of_o those_o many_o calamity_n or_o extreme_a suffering_n this_o humane_a nature_n be_v all_o along_o obnoxious_a to_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v man_n always_o in_o a_o state_n of_o persecution_n and_o that_o carry_v on_o by_o various_a degree_n to_o the_o utmost_a extremity_n and_o then_o recollect_v again_o that_o honour_n it_o have_v contract_v from_o that_o close_a and_o inseparable_a union_n there_o be_v between_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n in_o christ_n such_o suffering_n in_o such_o a_o person_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v infinite_o meritorious_a and_o consequent_o capable_a of_o atone_v or_o satisfy_v for_o infinite_a gild_n though_o such_o suffering_n be_v not_o eternal_a as_o those_o of_o sinful_a man_n be_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v for_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o satisfaction_n give_v for_o humane_a sin_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n as_o if_o divine_a anger_n can_v have_v be_v avert_v by_o no_o method_n but_o that_o of_o the_o lex_fw-la talionis_fw-la or_o like_v for_o like_v but_o that_o the_o redemption-price_n pay_v for_o the_o guilty_a prisoner_n shall_v be_v of_o